Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n father_n holy_a trinity_n 5,523 5 9.8695 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A36731 Remarks on several late writings publish'd in English by the Socinians wherein is show'd the insufficiency and weakness of their answers to the texts brought against them by the orthodox : in four letters, written at the request of a Socinian gentleman / by H. de Luzancy ... De Luzancy, H. C. (Hippolyte du Chastelet), d. 1713. 1696 (1696) Wing D2420; ESTC R14044 134,077 200

There are 27 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o confession_n of_o their_o adversary_n some_o of_o they_o have_v preserve_v the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n which_o expire_v soon_o after_o such_o a_o assertion_n have_v it_o not_o be_v true_a will_v have_v better_o become_v a_o pack_n of_o villain_n than_o holy_a and_o reverend_a men._n 2_o how_o dare_v the_o nicence_n father_n declare_v this_o to_o be_v the_o faith_n and_o anathematise_v whosoever_o be_v against_o that_o sacred_a wise_a divine_a and_o catholic_n faith_n have_v this_o faith_n be_v new_a and_o unknown_a to_o the_o father_n before_o nay_o have_v a_o contrary_a faith_n obtain_v then_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n this_o be_v a_o monstruous_a supposition_n that_o within_o 300_o year_n after_o christ_n the_o nicene_n father_n shall_v presume_v to_o obtrude_v the_o belief_n of_o and_o declare_v a_o doctrine_n to_o be_v faith_n which_o the_o primitive_a father_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o acquaint_v with_o to_o give_v more_o strength_n to_o this_o and_o prevent_v a_o objection_n which_o perhaps_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n and_o occasion_n another_o criticism_n i_o free_o own_o that_o not_o only_o the_o arrian_n but_o even_o some_o of_o the_o orthodox_n complain_v that_o the_o word_n consubstantial_a and_o consubstantiality_n be_v new_a and_o unscriptural_a but_o this_o confirm_v what_o i_o have_v say_v the_o newness_n and_o unscripturalness_n of_o the_o word_n but_o not_o of_o the_o sense_n be_v assert_v they_o agree_v in_o the_o truth_n and_o antiquity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n but_o only_o differ_v about_o these_o two_o word_n which_o by_o be_v new_a and_o unscriptural_a be_v not_o think_v so_o fit_a to_o express_v it_o i_o beg_v your_o pardon_n for_o insist_v so_o long_o upon_o this_o but_o i_o be_v force_v to_o it_o one_a because_o this_o very_a place_n of_o that_o letter_n you_o have_v often_o urge_v to_o i_o 2_o to_o show_v that_o how_o great_a critic_n soever_o we_o be_v we_o must_v be_v just_a and_o equitable_a and_o value_v reason_n above_o criticism_n if_o these_o gentleman_n write_v for_o the_o unlearned_a they_o be_v much_o out_o of_o the_o way_n these_o thing_n be_v above_o their_o reach_n and_o if_o for_o the_o learned_a they_o must_v own_v that_o this_o have_v not_o make_v one_o learned_a man_n of_o their_o side_n it_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o chicane_n which_o man_n of_o sense_n abhor_v 6_o these_o gentleman_n will_v have_v we_o prove_v those_o term_n by_o scripture_n which_o we_o own_v to_o be_v unscriptural_a they_o challenge_v we_o to_o find_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o word_n godman_n trinity_n incarnation_n nay_o whole_a proposition_n in_o terminis_fw-la the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n now_o cite_v pag._n 10._o pretend_v it_o as_o a_o great_a argument_n of_o their_o side_n that_o tertullian_n be_v the_o first_o among_o the_o latin_n and_o clemens_n alexand._n among_o the_o greek_n who_o first_o use_v the_o word_n trinity_n we_o may_v as_o well_o ask_v and_o with_o as_o little_a reason_n where_o be_v the_o word_n unity_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n or_o sacrament_n or_o hierarchy_n and_o several_a more_o which_o all_o the_o world_n receive_v and_o yet_o be_v no_o scriptural_a word_n if_o we_o do_v but_o find_v the_o thing_n express_v by_o the_o word_n as_o that_o god_n be_v one_o that_o there_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o there_o be_v a_o order_n of_o man_n appoint_v to_o administer_v holy_a thing_n the_o word_n be_v a_o natural_a consequence_n and_o found_v in_o the_o thing_n themselves_o be_v it_o not_o high_o unjust_a to_o ask_v we_o where_o we_o find_v a_o trinity_n if_o we_o can_v prove_v three_o divine_a person_n that_o beside_o the_o father_n who_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v god_n the_o son_n also_o and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v god_n to_o wonder_v at_o the_o word_n eternal_a generation_n since_o if_o we_o prove_v christ_n pre-existence_n and_o pre-eternity_n he_o can_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o by_o way_n of_o eternal_a generation_n to_o stare_v at_o the_o word_n incarnation_n as_o such_o a_o unheard_a of_o thing_n since_o if_o christ_n be_v god_n and_o yet_o have_v take_v our_o nature_n he_o must_v be_v incarnate_a these_o be_v poor_a mean_a and_o a_o sort_n of_o mob_n difficulty_n these_o grievance_n be_v consider_v i_o beg_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v equitable_a one_a i_o beg_v that_o if_o we_o prove_v the_o thing_n in_o question_n that_o be_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n we_o may_v have_v no_o quarrel_n about_o the_o word_n trinity_n and_o incarnation_n 2_o that_o no_o particular_a interpretation_n of_o any_o protestant_a author_n may_v be_v bring_v against_o we_o as_o interpretation_n either_o of_o our_o church_n or_o any_o other_o considerable_a body_n of_o protestant_n 3_o that_o if_o a_o text_n be_v capable_a of_o a_o various_a read_n and_o of_o a_o double_a sense_n that_o sense_n and_o read_n may_v be_v preserve_v which_o be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v the_o ancient_a read_n and_o the_o sense_n general_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n a_o sense_n new_a and_o unknown_a to_o all_o the_o age_n of_o the_o church_n can_v be_v the_o sense_n and_o that_o possession_n which_o we_o and_o all_o christian_a society_n be_v in_o of_o those_o text_n can_v be_v disturb_v without_o something_o more_o forcible_a and_o authoritative_a than_o the_o witty_a fancy_n of_o a_o interpreter_n 4_o i_o beg_v that_o the_o father_n may_v be_v hear_v as_o witness_n of_o a_o unquestionable_a integrity_n and_o that_o this_o at_o least_o may_v be_v a_o real_a prejudice_n against_o these_o gentleman_n that_o they_o have_v not_o only_o oppose_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o age_n but_o also_o that_o of_o time_n past_a 5_o that_o a_o criticism_n alone_o the_o doubt_v of_o a_o book_n the_o deny_v of_o a_o place_n the_o wrangle_n about_o a_o particle_n without_o some_o considerable_a reason_n to_o back_o it_o may_v not_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o answer_n 6_o that_o not_o only_o some_o one_o particular_a text_n which_o we_o allege_v be_v consider_v but_o that_o all_o our_o text_n be_v take_v together_o with_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o important_a reason_n which_o enforce_v the_o belief_n of_o our_o mystery_n this_o grant_v i_o conceive_v that_o it_o be_v no_o difficult_a matter_n to_o convince_v a_o candid_a opposer_n that_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v clear_a for_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n we_o will_v begin_v by_o that_o which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o holy_a religion_n matt._n 28.19_o go_v you_o therefore_o and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o be_v the_o ancient_a profession_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o ingenuous_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milb_n pag._n 16._o he_o cite_v for_o this_o tertullian_n de_fw-fr bapt_v c._n 13._o he_o may_v have_v cite_v theodoret_n lib._n 1._o c._n 12._o st._n basil_n de_fw-fr spir._n sanct_a and_o arrius_n himself_o who_o be_v a_o witness_n of_o this_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o faith_n give_v to_o constantine_n and_o report_v by_o socrates_n lib._n 1._o c._n 26._o the_o orthodox_n from_o this_o text_n conclude_v three_o person_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o these_o gentleman_n only_o two_o the_o father_n who_o be_v god_n and_o the_o son_n the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o energy_n of_o the_o father_n they_o be_v positive_a in_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 25._o that_o neither_o the_o more_o learned_a of_o their_o opposer_n nor_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o 400_o year_n insist_v on_o this_o text_n to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n the_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v a_o vast_a mistake_n and_o the_o very_a supposition_n be_v impossible_a this_o place_n have_v be_v cite_v so_o often_o by_o the_o ancient_n and_o modern_a to_o prove_v the_o person_n of_o the_o trinity_n must_v of_o course_n in_o their_o hypothesis_n be_v a_o argument_n for_o their_o divinity_n they_o agree_v with_o we_o that_o the_o son_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o text_n be_v christ_n jesus_n who_o they_o will_v have_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o all_o other_o title_n but_o that_o of_o nature_n and_o essence_n they_o say_v of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o his_o miraculous_a conception_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n by_o his_o mission_n to_o preach_v to_o man_n and_o reclaim_v they_o from_o their_o sin_n by_o his_o glorious_a resurrection_n be_v beget_v to_o a_o new_a life_n and_o his_o admission_n to_o a_o bless_a immortality_n whence_o as_o god_n deputy_n he_o be_v to_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a
no_o solid_a satisfaction_n i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o old_a way_n and_o aim_v at_o these_o two_o thing_n first_o to_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o proof_n real_o imply_v all_o the_o rest_n for_o if_o the_o son_n be_v god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n the_o great_a objection_n be_v answer_v that_o three_o divine_a person_n destroy_v the_o unity_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n since_o if_o it_o do_v appear_v that_o it_o be_v so_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n of_o person_n without_o a_o destruction_n of_o that_o unity_n which_o be_v inseparable_a from_o the_o divine_a nature_n second_o i_o have_v attempt_v to_o show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o these_o gentleman_n answer_n to_o those_o substantial_a text_n on_o which_o our_o belief_n rest_v for_o i_o must_v beg_v leave_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v almost_o incredible_a that_o such_o thin_a ill-built_a unwary_a answer_n shall_v drop_v from_o person_n undoubted_o of_o great_a learning_n and_o it_o be_v a_o strong_a confirmation_n of_o those_o very_a proof_n when_o mighty_a adversary_n have_v so_o little_a to_o say_v to_o they_o if_o the_o whole_a be_v not_o manage_v as_o it_o shall_v be_v i_o hope_v that_o the_o sacred_a cause_n which_o i_o maintain_v will_v not_o suffer_v for_o it_o and_o if_o the_o person_n for_o who_o sake_n these_o letter_n be_v write_v be_v not_o satisfy_v by_o what_o i_o have_v do_v it_o be_v he_o and_o my_o misfortune_n that_o i_o can_v do_v no_o better_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o these_o paper_n be_v with_o the_o humble_a submission_n offer_v to_o the_o judgement_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o first_o letter_n sir_n i_o have_v read_v the_o book_n which_o you_o be_v please_v to_o lend_v i_o with_o as_o much_o application_n as_o i_o can_v and_o be_o now_o to_o discharge_v my_o promise_n of_o give_v you_o my_o sense_n of_o they_o i_o confess_v it_o be_v somewhat_o a_o hard_a province_n and_o in_o particular_a to_o i_o who_o ever_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o dispute_n in_o religion_n and_o full_o persuade_v that_o the_o only_a way_n to_o unite_v dissent_v christian_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o dispute_v as_o to_o live_v up_o to_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o religion_n which_o we_o all_o confess_v to_o be_v as_o the_o god_n who_o give_v it_o holy_a and_o just_a this_o will_v have_v oblige_v i_o to_o be_v silent_a but_o since_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o make_v you_o a_o part_n of_o my_o care_n and_o that_o you_o desire_v i_o to_o resolve_v your_o doubt_n against_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n which_o you_o say_v you_o be_v most_o willing_a to_o embrace_v if_o you_o can_v be_v satisfy_v that_o it_o be_v true_a i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o give_v you_o the_o best_a information_n i_o can_v leave_v all_o to_o the_o candour_n of_o your_o nature_n and_o to_o that_o solid_a judgement_n which_o i_o have_v observe_v in_o you_o i_o design_v once_o to_o have_v follow_v every_o tract_n which_o you_o put_v in_o my_o hand_n but_o i_o be_v dissuade_v from_o it_o first_o by_o the_o length_n and_o tediousness_n of_o the_o work_n second_o by_o observe_v that_o your_o friend_n say_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n over_o and_o over_o again_o these_o gentleman_n have_v the_o way_n to_o turn_v the_o same_o argument_n into_o several_a shape_n and_o put_v their_o thought_n every_o day_n in_o a_o new_a dress_n as_o to_o their_o ability_n their_o great_a enemy_n must_v confess_v that_o they_o be_v not_o ordinary_a they_o be_v man_n of_o learning_n their_o stile_n be_v correct_v exact_a and_o florid_n they_o have_v the_o misfortune_n of_o origen_n of_o who_o a_o ancient_n say_v that_o vbi_fw-la bene_fw-la nemo_fw-la melius_fw-la ubi_fw-la male_a nemo_fw-la pejus_fw-la none_o can_v do_v better_o where_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n none_o worse_o where_o they_o be_v in_o the_o wrong_n i_o find_v also_o that_o sometime_o those_o fine_a pen_n be_v dip_v in_o gall_n that_o they_o be_v not_o spare_v of_o the_o sharp_a invective_n and_o that_o lay_v aside_o their_o fine_a and_o gentlemen-like_a way_n of_o writing_n they_o become_v mortal_n again_o and_o grow_v acquaint_v with_o all_o sort_n of_o sarcasm_n the_o preface_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n be_v sharp_a and_o scurrilous_a the_o reflection_n on_o both_o the_o university_n and_o the_o skill_n of_o the_o bottle_n do_v not_o much_o grace_n the_o dispute_n the_o trinity_n of_o marcus_n tullius_n cicero_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o illustration_n of_o the_o word_n person_n by_o dr._n wallis_n the_o trinity_n of_o the_o mobile_n of_o ignorant_a and_o lazy_a doctor_n the_o sabellian_n targonry_n of_o dr._n south_n consider_v on_o the_o explic_a of_o the_o doctr._n of_o the_o holy_a trin._n pag._n 11._o may_v have_v be_v lay_v aside_o and_o the_o pretend_a wit_n that_o it_o amount_v to_o reserve_v for_o a_o better_a use_n give_v i_o leave_v also_o to_o admire_v how_o man_n who_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v think_v pious_a as_o well_o as_o learned_a can_v turn_v solid_a reason_n into_o railleries_n and_o disprove_v a_o argument_n by_o ridicul_v it_o indeed_o tertullian_n in_o his_o apologetic_n ask_v whether_o he_o shall_v laugh_v at_o the_o vanity_n of_o the_o heathen_a and_o their_o rite_n or_o whether_o he_o shall_v reproach_v they_o with_o their_o blindness_n rideam_fw-la vanitatem_fw-la qut_fw-la exprobrem_fw-la caecitatem_fw-la but_o it_o be_v quite_o another_o thing_n when_o a_o writer_n pretend_v to_o answer_v man_n of_o reason_n and_o learning_n and_o when_o the_o objection_n be_v real_o strong_a and_o solid_a not_o to_o multiply_v instance_n i_o will_v only_o point_v at_o that_o in_o a_o letter_n of_o resolution_n pag._n 3_o 4_o 5._o the_o author_n have_v object_v to_o himself_o that_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n be_v incomprehensible_a mystery_n and_o that_o when_o the_o matter_n be_v of_o mere_a revelation_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o either_o reason_n or_o sense_n he_o propose_v several_a thing_n which_o be_v real_o above_o both_o this_o be_v answer_v by_o make_v a_o mystery_n of_o that_o which_o be_v none_o the_o assertion_n of_o christ_n joh._n 15.1_o i_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n and_o the_o notion_n of_o god-man_n be_v ridicule_v by_o that_o of_o christ-vine_n or_o vine-man_n or_o viney_n man_n dr._n wallis_n have_v assert_v that_o the_o three_o person_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n be_v more_o than_o three_o divine_a attribute_n and_o that_o though_o perhaps_o their_o personality_n may_v not_o so_o exact_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o notion_n of_o personality_n which_o we_o be_v acquaint_v with_o in_o create_a being_n yet_o there_o be_v certain_o somewhat_o more_o than_o attribute_n they_o make_v a_o perpetual_a descant_n upon_o three_o somewhat_n or_o three_o i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v the_o vnreason_n of_o the_o doctr._n of_o the_o trin._n pag._n 5_o 6._o dr._n south_n in_o his_o animadversion_n chap._n 8._o pag._n 241._o have_v explain_v the_o modes_n of_o be_v and_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o a_o mode_n be_v proper_o a_o certain_a habitude_n of_o some_o be_v essence_n or_o thing_n whereby_o the_o say_a essence_n or_o be_v be_v determine_v to_o some_o particular_a state_n or_o condition_n which_o bare_o of_o itself_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v determine_v to_o that_o a_o mode_n in_o thing_n spiritual_a and_o immaterial_a seem_v to_o have_v much_o the_o like_a reference_n to_o such_o kind_n of_o being_n as_o a_o posture_n have_v to_o a_o body_n to_o which_o it_o give_v some_o difference_n or_o distinction_n without_o add_v any_o new_a entity_n or_o be_v to_o it_o and_o have_v tell_v we_o also_o pag._n 242._o lin_v 4._o that_o no_o one_o thing_n can_v agree_v both_o to_o god_n and_o the_o creature_n by_o a_o perfect_a vnivocation_n which_o the_o answerer_n have_v i_o hope_v not_o wilful_o overlookt_v and_o which_o be_v enough_o to_o prevent_v any_o just_a exception_n against_o it_o then_o consider_v on_o the_o explic._n pag._n 21._o we_o have_v a_o story_n of_o don_n quixot_n and_o of_o dulcinea_n del_fw-it toboso_n pag._n 22._o he_o make_v the_o grave_n and_o learned_a doctor_n to_o answer_v that_o the_o three_o divine_a person_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o god_n in_o three_o gambol_n or_o posture_n a_o little_a below_o he_o think_v it_o shall_v seem_v that_o the_o faithful_a must_v put_v their_o trust_n in_o there_o posture_n thus_o the_o declamation_n go_v on_o posture_n a_o beget_v posture_n b_o posture_n a_o and_o b_o breathe_v posture_n c._n i_o appeal_v to_o these_o gentleman_n themselves_o whether_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o vindicate_v religion_n and_o keep_v man_n from_o atheism_n whether_o they_o seek_v to_o instruct_v or_o divert_v their_o reader_n whether_o such_o petulant_a sally_n of_o wit_n be_v
he_o be_v the_o expect_a saviour_n than_o a_o lively_a application_n of_o this_o text_n to_o his_o disciple_n go_v and_o show_v john_n again_o those_o thing_n you_o do_v hear_v and_o see_v the_o blind_a receive_v their_o sight_n the_o lame_a walk_n the_o leper_n be_v cleanse_v the_o deaf_a hear_v the_o dead_a be_v raise_v up_o the_o poor_a have_v the_o gospel_n preach_v to_o they_o he_o be_v god_n that_o shall_v come_v he_o be_v god_n that_o shall_v do_v this_o christ_n be_v come_v and_o have_v do_v all_o this_o what_o consequence_n be_v more_o natural_a than_o that_o he_o be_v true_o god_n to_o this_o these_o gentleman_n answer_v brief_a hist_n pag._n 20._o one_a that_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o our_o saviour_n intend_v to_o quote_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n 2_o that_o admit_v he_o do_v god_n be_v only_o say_v to_o come_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o his_o ambassador_n jesus_n christ_n and_o because_o in_o he_o and_o by_o he_o he_o give_v sight_n to_o the_o blind_a etc._n etc._n they_o cite_v for_o this_o joh._n 14.10_o act._n 10.38_o to_o the_o one_a whether_o christ_n intend_v it_o or_o not_o be_v not_o at_o all_o material_a what_o we_o have_v to_o do_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o prophecy_n be_v fullfil_v in_o he_o if_o it_o be_v which_o be_v undeniable_a than_o he_o be_v the_o god_n who_o be_v to_o come_v and_o work_v these_o miracle_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o mankind_n but_o that_o he_o intend_v it_o will_v appear_v not_o only_o from_o the_o exact_a correspondency_n of_o the_o text_n but_o also_o from_o the_o constant_a tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o understand_v this_o place_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o from_o it_o conclude_v that_o he_o be_v to_o work_v miracle_n it_o be_v natural_a therefore_o in_o the_o baptist_n who_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o christ_n stupendous_a conception_n by_o which_o he_o be_v design_v to_o his_o miraculous_a performance_n to_o send_v and_o ask_v whether_o he_o be_v he_o that_o be_v to_o come_v and_o as_o natural_a to_o christ_n to_o give_v john_n no_o other_o answer_n than_o that_o those_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o he_o by_o which_o the_o world_n be_v to_o be_v convince_v that_o the_o messiah_n be_v come_v the_o second_o that_o god_n be_v come_v to_o the_o jew_n in_o his_o ambassador_n and_o messenger_n christ_n jesus_n be_v a_o flat_a denial_n to_o a_o express_a text._n the_o prophet_n speak_v of_o a_o immediate_a come_n of_o a_o personal_a appearance_n of_o a_o mighty_a expectation_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n he_o who_o be_v to_o come_v to_o appear_v to_o remove_v that_o expectation_n by_o his_o glorious_a presence_n be_v call_v our_o god_n our_o god_n shall_v come_v he_o shall_v come_v if_o this_o be_v no_o more_o than_o to_o appear_v by_o his_o messenger_n a_o less_o prophet_n will_v have_v serve_v the_o turn_n such_o vehement_a and_o positive_a expression_n can_v never_o agree_v with_o so_o poor_a a_o shift_n nor_o be_v it_o at_o all_o reconcilable_a with_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o be_v so_o far_o persuade_v that_o the_o messiah_n be_v a_o divine_a person_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o god_n speak_v of_o here_o that_o several_a of_o their_o doctor_n have_v think_v from_o the_o last_o verse_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o he_o shall_v actual_o deliver_v they_o who_o be_v already_o in_o the_o place_n of_o eternal_a torment_n but_o what_o a_o unlucky_a strain_n be_v the_o citation_n of_o joh._n 14.10_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o he_o do_v the_o work_n and_o act._n 10.38_o god_n be_v with_o he_o who_o doubt_v that_o god_n be_v present_a to_o the_o holy_a jesus_n who_o doubt_n that_o god_n be_v with_o he_o since_o we_o contend_v with_o all_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n that_o the_o eternal_a word_n of_o the_o father_n assume_v his_o nature_n the_o citation_n of_o st._n john_n absolute_o destroy_v what_o they_o will_v infer_v from_o it_o christ_n tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o if_o they_o have_v know_v he_o they_o have_v know_v the_o father_n also_o philip_n upon_o this_o beg_v that_o he_o will_v show_v they_o the_o father_n christ_n answer_v he_o that_o have_v see_v i_o have_v see_v the_o father_n he_o give_v present_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o answer_n i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o that_o be_v there_o be_v in_o we_o a_o distinction_n of_o person_n he_o be_v the_o father_n i_o be_o the_o son_n there_o be_v a_o unity_n of_o nature_n i_o be_o in_o he_o and_o he_o be_v in_o i_o this_o be_v not_o my_o own_o assertion_n the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o he_o do_v the_o work_n the_o work_n that_o the_o father_n do_v in_o i_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o what_o i_o say_v he_o resume_v the_o whole_a argument_n believe_v i_o that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o father_n and_o the_o father_n in_o i_o or_o else_o believe_v i_o for_o the_o very_a work_n sake_n believe_v i_o who_o say_v that_o it_o be_v so_o with_o we_o but_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o believe_v upon_o my_o own_o authority_n be_v convince_v by_o those_o miraculous_a operation_n which_o be_v a_o invincible_a proof_n of_o what_o i_o say_v the_o 40th_o chapter_n of_o isaias_n be_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n only_o it_o seem_v more_o plain_a and_o express_v it_o have_v beside_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o understand_v it_o to_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o messiah_n christ_n be_v represent_v here_o as_o our_o god_n in_o such_o expression_n as_o show_v the_o whole_a oeconomy_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o be_v applicable_a to_o no_o mortal_a man._n so_o great_a a_o truth_n be_v usher_v in_o with_o a_o splendid_a preface_n verse_n 3_o 4_o 5._o by_o which_o the_o four_o evangelist_n have_v prove_v the_o mission_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n the_o foreruner_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o we_o have_v the_o advantage_n that_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o one_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o the_o other_o o_o jerusalem_n that_o bring_v good_a tiding_n lift_v up_o thy_o voice_n with_o strength_n ......_o say_v to_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n behold_v your_o god_n behold_v the_o lord_n god_n will_v come_v with_o strong_a hand_n ......_o he_o shall_v feed_v his_o flock_n like_o a_o shepherd_n he_o shall_v gather_v the_o lamb_n with_o his_o arm_n and_o carry_v they_o in_o his_o bosom_n christ_n then_o be_v the_o lord_n god_n see_v by_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n to_o he_o the_o character_n of_o strength_n do_v agree_v who_o be_v to_o conquer_v the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n joh._n 12.31_o to_o he_o do_v that_o of_o the_o shepherd_n answer_v exact_o who_o say_v of_o himself_o joh._n 10.11_o i_o be_o the_o good_a shepherd_n of_o who_o st._n paul_n say_v heb._n 13.20_o that_o he_o be_v the_o great_a shepherd_n of_o the_o sheep_n and_o st._n peter_n 1._o pet_n 2.25_o the_o shepherd_n and_o bishop_n of_o our_o soul_n nor_o can_v it_o be_v so_o much_o as_o pretend_v here_o that_o god_n come_v in_o his_o ambassador_n and_o messenger_n christ_n jesus_n that_o wild_a notion_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o place_n here_o the_o lord_n god_n who_o be_v to_o come_v be_v to_o be_v see_v by_o the_o city_n of_o judah_n he_o be_v to_o be_v precede_v and_o have_v his_o way_n prepare_v by_o the_o illustrious_a forerunner_n the_o baptist_n who_o be_v invest_v in_o that_o glorious_a office_n be_v on_o that_o very_a account_n call_v luk._n 2.67_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a let_v any_o one_o compare_n candid_o these_o expression_n the_o lord_n god_n and_o the_o high_a esay_n say_v the_o lord_n god_n will_v come_v zacharias_n say_v and_o thou_o child_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o prophet_n of_o the_o high_a for_o thou_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o prepare_v his_o way_n the_o baptist_n be_v the_o immediate_a prophet_n of_o christ_n christ_n be_v the_o lord_n who_o way_n he_o be_v to_o prepare_v that_o lord_n be_v the_o high_a who_o prophet_n he_o be_v and_o the_o lord_n god_n who_o be_v to_o be_v see_v and_o who_o way_n be_v to_o be_v prepare_v this_o be_v another_o place_n which_o these_o gentleman_n have_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o and_o so_o have_v say_v nothing_o to_o it_o the_o 45th_o of_o esay_n be_v whole_o take_v up_o to_o prove_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n v._o 6.18_o 22._o i_o be_o the_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v none_o else_o i_o be_o god_n and_o there_o be_v none_o else_o oppose_v in_o this_o the_o vanity_n and_o multiplicity_n of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o heathen_a as_o a_o consequence_n of_o that_o unity_n the_o almighty_a challenge_v the_o praise_n and_o adoration_n of_o all_o his_o creature_n v._o 23._o i_o have_v swear_v by_o myself_o that_o
sacred_a and_o divine_a mystery_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o some_o other_o have_v presume_v to_o go_v further_o and_o to_o six_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o demand_v then_o with_o what_o equity_n these_o gentleman_n can_v make_v that_o objection_n and_o repeat_v it_o with_o as_o much_o earnestness_n as_o if_o they_o reason_v upon_o a_o undisputed_a principle_n the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n we_o believe_v the_o how_o can_v it_o be_v we_o acknowledge_v incomprehensible_a we_o do_v the_o same_o of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o revelation_n concern_v all_o this_o be_v plain_a and_o express_v we_o pretend_v to_o no_o more_o it_o be_v disingenuous_a and_o obstinate_a to_o deny_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v because_o we_o can_v show_v how_o it_o be_v have_v we_o deny_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o objection_n have_v be_v of_o some_o force_n but_o deny_v only_a transubstantiation_n that_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o that_o presence_n it_o be_v altogether_o wide_a of_o the_o question_n have_v do_v with_o this_o author_n i_o pass_v to_o that_o of_o the_o brief_a history_n who_o do_v not_o think_v this_o answer_n of_o mr._n milbourn_n adversary_n solid_a enough_o to_o embrace_v it_o but_o after_o some_o cursory_a animadversion_n on_o the_o church_n exposition_n shelter_n himself_o under_o grotius_n wing_n and_o deliver_v that_o learned_a man_n opinion_n it_o be_v needless_a to_o transcribe_v it_o all_o that_o he_o say_v pag._n 26_o 27_o 28._o amount_v to_o this_o grotius_n understand_v as_o we_o do_v the_o creation_n here_o speak_v of_o to_o be_v that_o of_o the_o natural_a world_n he_o explain_v the_o word_n in_o the_o beginning_n as_o we_o do_v when_o god_n create_v all_o thing_n or_o when_o all_o thing_n begin_v to_o exist_v he_o make_v as_o we_o do_v that_o word_n to_o be_v not_o only_o pre-existent_a but_o eternal_a he_o understand_v as_o we_o do_v the_o word_n to_o be_v with_o god_n and_o to_o be_v god_n he_o read_v as_o we_o do_v all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o for_o he_o he_o render_v as_o we_o do_v the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n acknowledge_v that_o flesh_n be_v the_o usual_a scripture_n phrase_n for_o man_n and_o say_v also_o in_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o 10_o verse_n that_o in_o process_n of_o time_n the_o word_n come_v to_o be_v incarnate_a you_o will_v say_v then_o where_o do_v he_o differ_v from_o the_o orthodox_n for_o as_o yet_o nothing_o appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n receive_v in_o the_o christian_a world_n he_o differ_v only_o in_o this_o that_o he_o make_v this_o word_n to_o be_v only_o a_o property_n and_o a_o attribute_n of_o god_n i._n e._n his_o wisdom_n and_o power_n but_o not_o a_o divine_a person_n i_o wonder_v that_o this_o author_n will_v embrace_v a_o exposition_n which_o real_o ruin_v all_o their_o little_a criticism_n their_o charm_a allegory_n and_o bring_v the_o question_n to_o this_o only_a difficulty_n whether_o the_o word_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o attribute_n or_o whether_o he_o be_v a_o person_n whatever_o grotius_n in_o other_o place_n have_v do_v for_o these_o gentleman_n he_o have_v certain_o give_v up_o the_o cause_n here_o by_o cleave_v to_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n which_o indeed_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n avoid_v i_o will_v only_o propose_v these_o difficulty_n one_a if_o the_o word_n here_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o attribute_n or_o property_n how_o be_v he_o constant_o speak_v of_o here_o by_o he_o and_o he_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o prov._n 9.1_o wisdom_n be_v say_v to_o build_v her_o house_n and_o david_n call_v god_n commandment_n his_o councillor_n since_o in_o those_o place_n be_v a_o visible_a and_o a_o design_v metaphor_n but_o grotius_n own_v here_o a_o real_a actual_a natural_a creation_n of_o the_o world_n which_o admit_v of_o nothing_o figurative_a 2_o if_o the_o word_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o attribute_n of_o god_n what_o can_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o evangelist_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n what_o be_v there_o in_o this_o so_o singular_a and_o to_o what_o can_v this_o lead_v we_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v before_o all_o thing_n and_o the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v with_o god_n that_o be_v god_n be_v wise_a before_o the_o world_n be_v create_v certain_o st._n john_n mean_v somewhat_o more_o than_o this_o why_o not_o in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o power_n the_o mercy_n the_o truth_n the_o holiness_n of_o god_n for_o all_o this_o god_n be_v before_o thing_n begin_v to_o be_v 3_o what_o can_v be_v the_o design_n of_o this_o and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n who_o ever_o hear_v any_o one_o say_v that_o wisdom_n be_v god_n and_o power_n be_v god_n nor_o will_v it_o serve_v here_o to_o say_v as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n that_o all_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n be_v god_n or_o that_o the_o name_n jehovah_n be_v attribute_v to_o angel_n and_o that_o moses_n be_v call_v god_n either_o of_o these_o answer_n destroy_v the_o other_o for_o if_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n be_v god_n than_o wisdom_n be_v the_o supreme_a god_n and_o not_o as_o the_o angel_n or_o moses_n or_o if_o wisdom_n be_v call_v jehovah_n as_o the_o angel_n and_o god_n as_o moses_n than_o all_o the_o attribute_n of_o god_n be_v not_o the_o supreme_a god_n 4_o if_o the_o word_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o attribute_n what_o can_v be_v make_v of_o this_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o he_o come_v unto_o his_o own_o and_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o live_v in_o the_o world_n unknown_a to_o the_o world_n come_v to_o and_o reject_v by_o man_n can_v be_v say_v of_o wisdom_n if_o it_o can_v bear_v that_o sense_n the_o evangelist_n say_v nothing_o since_o before_o the_o gospel_n before_o moses_n before_o the_o flood_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v despise_v by_o men._n 5_o the_o follow_a word_n can_v never_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o attribute_n so_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o to_o they_o give_v he_o power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n even_o to_o they_o who_o believe_v on_o his_o name_n can_v sense_n be_v make_v of_o wisdom_n give_v we_o power_n or_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o wisdom_n 6_o if_o wisdom_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o qualification_n how_o come_v this_o and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n i_o remember_v that_o these_o gentleman_n value_v themselves_o much_o upon_o this_o notion_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o impartial_a account_n of_o the_o word_n mystery_n that_o they_o can_v believe_v the_o trinity_n because_o they_o can_v have_v no_o notion_n of_o a_o trinity_n i_o humble_o beg_v a_o notion_n of_o justice_n prudence_n holiness_n or_o as_o here_o wisdom_n make_v flesh_n i_o humble_o beg_v a_o notion_n of_o a_o attribute_n make_v flesh_n 7_o and_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o father_n i_o again_o humble_o beg_v to_o know_v whether_o the_o attribute_n wisdom_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o father_n i_o beg_v a_o notion_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n wisdom_n to_o be_v see_v by_o human_a eye_n no_o say_v the_o author_n you_o mistake_v it_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o the_o man_n on_o who_o the_o word_n do_v abide_v but_o i_o must_v beg_v his_o pardon_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o this_o be_v too_o great_a a_o imposition_n on_o the_o sense_n of_o mankind_n any_o one_o who_o know_v somewhat_o more_o than_o his_o a._n b._n c._n know_v that_o the_o word_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o all_o that_o be_v say_v here_o it_o be_v of_o the_o word_n that_o it_o be_v say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n that_o he_o be_v god_n that_o he_o be_v with_o god_n that_o he_o make_v the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v make_v flesh_n that_o his_o glory_n be_v see_v as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n he_o must_v not_o he_o can_v admit_v the_o word_n to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o all_o the_o other_o proposition_n and_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o this_o i_o beg_v your_o pardon_n for_o have_v be_v so_o long_o on_o this_o text._n but_o the_o answer_n of_o your_o friend_n be_v of_o so_o great_a a_o extent_n though_o of_o so_o different_a a_o nature_n it_o be_v fit_a to_o show_v how_o weak_a and_o unsatisfactory_a they_o appear_v i_o then_o prosecute_v the_o argument_n and_o offer_v some_o other_o to_o your_o consideration_n i_o think_v that_o nothing_o prove_v the_o eternity_n of_o god_n so_o
that_o nature_n the_o place_n cite_v out_o of_o st._n peter_n have_v no_o relation_n at_o all_o to_o this_o that_o of_o st._n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n be_v as_o much_o foregin_v to_o it_o be_v only_o a_o excellent_a metaphor_n to_o express_v our_o future_a state_n that_o to_o timothy_n be_v indeed_o more_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n but_o the_o apostle_n have_v prevent_v the_o objection_n by_o speak_v positive_o of_o god_n decree_n in_o respect_n of_o our_o election_n who_o have_v call_v we_o with_o a_o holy_a call_n not_o according_a to_o our_o work_n but_o according_a to_o his_o own_o purpose_n ..._o which_o word_n the_o author_n be_v please_v to_o overlook_v what_o have_v be_v say_v will_v give_v light_n to_o some_o difficulty_n which_o these_o gentleman_n judge_v to_o be_v unanswerable_a the_o one_a be_v take_v from_o this_o very_a chapter_n joh._n 17.3_o and_o this_o be_v life_n eternal_a that_o they_o may_v know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o thou_o have_v send_v the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n pag._n 22._o be_v positive_a that_o the_o father_n be_v call_v the_o true_a god_n exclusive_o to_o any_o other_o and_o that_o nothing_o can_v more_o effectual_o evince_v that_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n but_o only_o god_n ambassador_n this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o very_o many_o text_n say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 5._o which_o direct_o affirm_v that_o only_o the_o father_n be_v god_n the_o objection_n be_v not_o new_a it_o be_v make_v by_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o explode_v by_o the_o father_n the_o truth_n be_v these_o holy_a man_n never_o understand_v the_o word_n as_o fix_v and_o restrain_v the_o deity_n to_o the_o father_n with_o exclusion_n to_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n nor_o their_o sense_n to_o have_v any_o regard_n to_o either_o of_o they_o or_o else_o this_o will_v absolute_o have_v decide_v the_o controversy_n nor_o be_v it_o comprehensible_a that_o the_o father_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_n will_v have_v speak_v so_o full_o to_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n or_o that_o those_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o father_n after_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n dare_v have_v embrace_v it_o as_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o they_o have_v look_v upon_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o text_n to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o be_v pretend_v by_o these_o gentleman_n the_o good_a the_o wise_a the_o learned_a can_v be_v conceive_v to_o have_v wilful_o run_v into_o a_o error_n contrary_a to_o the_o open_a and_o know_v sense_n of_o such_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n they_o constant_o understand_v these_o word_n the_o father_n the_o only_a true_a god_n to_o be_v speak_v not_o exclusive_o to_o the_o two_o other_o person_n but_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o god_n of_o the_o heathen_a those_o false_a deity_n which_o have_v usurp_v among_o they_o the_o place_n of_o the_o true_a nor_o be_v it_o unusual_a in_o scripture_n by_o the_o father_n to_o mean_v not_o so_o much_o the_o first_o divine_a person_n as_o the_o deity_n in_o general_n i_o will_v not_o spend_v time_n in_o set_v down_o the_o many_o way_n that_o this_o text_n may_v be_v read_v in_o or_o what_o order_n the_o word_n may_v be_v make_v capable_a of_o to_o take_v off_o their_o pretend_a inconsistency_n with_o the_o christian_a hypothesis_n of_o three_o person_n subsist_v in_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n st._n basil_n and_o st._n chrysostom_n have_v effectual_o do_v it_o and_o show_v how_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o have_v render_v only_o be_v rather_o comprehensive_a than_o exclusive_a in_o the_o dialect_n of_o scripture_n i_o have_v a_o plain_a and_o obvious_a reason_n why_o the_o only_a true_a god_n must_v be_v understand_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o father_n in_o opposition_n to_o false_a god_n and_o not_o in_o exclusion_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o that_o be_v that_o christ_n in_o scripture_n be_v call_v the_o true_a god_n and_o the_o only_a lord_n god_n which_o can_v never_o be_v if_o the_o only_a true_a god_n here_o must_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o father_n as_o these_o gentleman_n will_v have_v it_o 1_o joh._n 5.2_o and_o we_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v come_v and_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n that_o we_o may_v know_v he_o that_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a even_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ille_fw-la he_o be_v the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n i_o take_v this_o to_o be_v positive_a and_o decisive_a that_o the_o only_a true_a god_n can_v be_v understand_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o son_n or_o the_o holy_a spirit_n since_o the_o son_n be_v also_o call_v true_a god_n no_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n p._n 43._o this_o be_v a_o very_a negligent_a translation_n and_o no_o sense_n can_v be_v make_v of_o the_o word_n the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o text_n ought_v to_o have_v be_v render_v we_o be_v in_o he_o that_o be_v true_a by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o not_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n this_o text_n plain_o deny_v that_o chirst_n be_v the_o true_a god_n the_o outlandish_a socinian_o have_v make_v a_o miserable_a exception_n to_o this_o text_n which_o these_o gentleman_n think_v fit_a to_o forsake_v as_o ruinous_a but_o this_o be_v to_o the_o full_a as_o bad_a the_o translation_n be_v direct_o against_o they_o therefore_o it_o be_v negligent_a and_o nonsensical_a the_o translator_n can_v be_v make_v to_o speak_v as_o they_o will_v have_v they_o therefore_o they_o be_v careless_a and_o speak_v nonsense_n the_o particle_n in_o jesus_n christ_n ruin_v their_o opinion_n therefore_o it_o must_v be_v by_o contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o translation_n contrary_a to_o any_o possible_a construction_n of_o the_o place_n contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o interpreter_n you_o see_v sir_n how_o desperate_a be_v that_o cause_n which_o can_v support_v itself_o without_o these_o mean_a shift_n and_o have_v nothing_o to_o oppose_v to_o a_o plain_a and_o decide_v text_n but_o the_o bold_a and_o presumptuous_a alter_n of_o a_o particle_n i_o use_v these_o word_n which_o perhaps_o may_v seem_v too_o sharp_a because_o the_o thing_n of_o itself_o be_v so_o extraordinary_a and_o this_o text_n in_o the_o original_n so_o infinite_o clear_a that_o i_o dare_v give_v up_o the_o cause_n if_o of_o a_o thousand_o translator_n stranger_n to_o the_o controversy_n any_o one_o do_v translate_v by_o and_o not_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n i_o think_v that_o jud._n 4._o be_v much_o to_o be_v consider_v there_o be_v a_o description_n make_v of_o unhappy_a man_n who_o be_v creep_v in_o unaware_o their_o character_n be_v to_o be_v ungodly_a to_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o lasciviousness_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o only_a lord_n god_n and_o lord_n of_o we_o jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o whole_a be_v speak_v of_o christ_n appear_v from_o the_o greek_a construction_n of_o the_o phrase_n from_o the_o singleness_n of_o the_o article_n and_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o text_n without_o the_o least_o punctuation_n the_o whole_a run_v thus_o deny_v jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o only_a lord_n god_n and_o our_o lord_n this_o be_v so_o obvious_a that_o to_o prove_v it_o be_v to_o lose_v time_n it_o not_o only_a assert_n the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o show_v how_o vain_a be_v the_o pretence_n that_o in_o the_o dispute_v text_n the_o only_a true_a god_n shall_v exclude_v the_o son_n or_o the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o if_o any_o rational_a man_n dare_v infer_v from_o thence_o that_o because_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o only_a lord_n god_n therefore_o the_o father_n be_v neither_o lord_n nor_o god_n these_o gentleman_n have_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o this_o text_n in_o any_o of_o their_o writing_n that_o i_o have_v see_v and_o so_o have_v say_v nothing_o to_o it_o but_o yet_o because_o a_o proof_n must_v be_v clear_a and_o candid_a and_o remove_v if_o possible_a all_o objection_n what_o can_v be_v oppose_v to_o it_o amount_v to_o this_o that_o the_o old_a latin_a interpreter_n and_o some_o greek_a manuscript_n of_o a_o considerable_a authority_n do_v not_o read_v the_o word_n god_n and_o that_o erasmus_n have_v translate_v not_o the_o only_a lord_n god_n and_o lord_n of_o we_o jesus_n christ_n but_o god_n who_o be_v the_o only_a lord_n and_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n erasmus_n and_o one_o or_o two_o more_o modern_a interpreter_n who_o with_o all_o the_o care_n imaginable_a have_v endeavour_v to_o obscure_v or_o prevert_v all_o those_o text_n which_o speak_v open_o of_o the_o
be_v not_o please_v to_o observe_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o text_n a_o actual_a comparison_n of_o two_o nature_n of_o christ_n as_o man_n and_o of_o christ_n who_o be_v god_n bless_v over_o all_o of_o christ_n who_o in_o the_o first_o capacity_n be_v descend_v from_o the_o jew_n and_o be_v a_o jew_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o christ_n who_o in_o the_o other_o have_v a_o communication_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o be_v god_n bless_v over_o all_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr_n milbourn_n that_o these_o expression_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o he_o be_v only_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v according_a to_o the_o body_n i_o grant_v it_o but_o i_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o those_o place_n absolute_o and_o without_o relation_n to_o any_o thing_n else_o and_o that_o here_o he_o speak_v relative_o to_o another_o be_v which_o christ_n have_v this_o appear_v not_o only_o from_o the_o thing_n itself_o where_o there_o be_v a_o obvious_a comparison_n but_o from_o the_o very_a way_n of_o express_v of_o the_o greek_a which_o our_o language_n can_v reach_v in_o all_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o these_o gentleman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v express_v without_o any_o article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o determine_v it_o to_o any_o sense_n than_o what_o real_o it_o have_v but_o when_o this_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n there_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o which_o it_o be_v compare_v to_o somewhat_o else_o the_o apostle_n have_v it_o clear_o rom._n 1.2_o and_o 3._o make_v according_a to_o the_o flesh_n where_o the_o flesh_n do_v not_o signify_v the_o body_n as_o the_o place_n which_o they_o have_v cite_v to_o elude_v the_o force_n of_o this_o text_n but_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n in_o opposition_n to_o these_o word_n according_a to_o the_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n by_o which_o the_o divine_a be_v express_v this_o explication_n be_v of_o st._n chrysostom_n on_o this_o place_n theodoret_n and_o long_o before_o of_o tertullian_n adv_o prax._n make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n say_v that_o father_n here_o be_v the_o man_n and_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o holy_a spirit_n hic_fw-la est_fw-la deus_fw-la &_o sermo_fw-la dei_fw-la filius_fw-la this_o be_v the_o god_n and_o the_o word_n the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o divinity_n of_o tertullian_n time_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v do_v with_o this_o text_n i_o pass_v to_o act._n 20.28_o st._n paul_n take_v his_o leave_n of_o the_o asian_a bishop_n exhort_v they_o pathetical_o to_o that_o diligence_n and_o care_n which_o be_v the_o source_n of_o all_o pastoral_a virtue_n he_o urge_v it_o on_o these_o two_o motive_n one_a that_o they_o have_v receive_v their_o power_n from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 2_o that_o the_o church_n which_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o feed_v be_v the_o church_n for_o which_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o die_v feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o blood_n this_o be_v speak_v of_o a_o god_n by_o nature_n since_o according_a to_o the_o socinian_n rule_n god_n be_v name_v here_o with_o a_o article_n it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o god_n but_o the_o god_n he_o have_v purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o church_n he_o have_v buy_v we_o with_o a_o price_n and_o because_o without_o remission_n of_o sin_n there_o be_v no_o redemption_n and_o there_o be_v no_o remission_n without_o blood_n he_o have_v purchase_v we_o with_o blood_n but_o the_o blood_n of_o goat_n and_o calf_n the_o blood_n of_o other_o be_v of_o itself_o ineffectual_a and_o only_o figurative_a he_o have_v shed_v his_o own_o blood_n for_o we_o this_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o father_n who_o these_o gentleman_n deny_v and_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o reason_n to_o have_v suffer_v nor_o can_v it_o be_v assert_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n since_o they_o assure_v he_o to_o be_v only_o a_o power_n and_o a_o energy_n and_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o say_v that_o a_o energy_n shed_v his_o own_o blood_n in_o can_v be_v say_v of_o none_o but_o the_o son_n who_o have_v take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o become_v our_o mediator_n and_o highpriest_n and_o by_o his_o own_o blood_n that_o blood_n which_o he_o shed_v for_o the_o church_n obtain_v eternal_a redemption_n for_o we_o but_o that_o highpriest_n that_o mediator_n that_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o god_n therefore_o he_o must_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o since_o the_o father_n be_v the_o god_n and_o he_o be_v also_o the_o god_n there_o must_v be_v more_o person_n than_o one_o subsist_v in_o the_o deity_n this_o be_v decide_v and_o conclusive_a yet_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 34._o make_v these_o exception_n one_a that_o in_o the_o armenian_a syriack_n and_o the_o most_o ancient_a of_o the_o greek_a bibles_n the_o read_n be_v not_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o of_o christ_n 2_o that_o admit_v the_o read_n god_n in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n of_o the_o greek_a yet_o some_o great_a master_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n have_v render_v the_o greek_a word_n thus_o feed_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v with_o his_o own_o son_n blood_n 3_o that_o admit_v the_o translation_n in_o our_o english_a bibles_n some_o learned_a man_n particular_o erasmus_n have_v note_v that_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v here_o call_v the_o blood_n of_o god_n because_o it_o be_v the_o blood_n which_o god_n give_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n so_o joh_n 1.36_o this_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o lamb_n of_o sacrifice_n which_o god_n give_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n these_o gentleman_n have_v the_o misfortune_n to_o call_v every_o thing_n a_o answer_n one_a it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o some_o copy_n these_o word_n have_v be_v read_v with_o some_o alteration_n but_o nothing_o at_o all_o to_o their_o purpose_n some_o few_o have_v read_v the_o church_n of_o the_o lord_n other_o the_o church_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o god_n but_o none_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v much_o oblige_v the_o commonwealth_n of_o learning_n if_o they_o will_v produce_v any_o of_o these_o best_a and_o most_o ancient_a copy_n a_o very_a learned_a man_n of_o this_o age_n have_v pretend_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o the_o language_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o when_o the_o church_n be_v speak_v of_o by_o way_n of_o eminence_n as_o it_o be_v in_o this_o text_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n it_o be_v often_o say_v to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o never_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o this_o criticism_n they_o will_v find_v true_a if_o they_o give_v themselves_o the_o trouble_n to_o examine_v it_o the_o syriack_n interpreter_n be_v rather_o a_o expositor_n than_o a_o translator_n the_o latin_a who_o be_v whole_o a_o translator_n and_o not_o a_o expositor_n read_v ecclesiam_fw-la dei_fw-la the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o second_o part_n of_o their_o answer_n that_o some_o great_a master_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n have_v render_v his_o own_o son_n blood_n instead_o of_o his_o own_o blood_n be_v a_o cry_v notorious_a and_o unpardonable_a falsification_n of_o a_o text._n what_o will_v be_v the_o end_n of_o our_o dispute_n if_o when_o we_o be_v press_v with_o the_o undeniable_a evidence_n of_o a_o scripture_n we_o presume_v to_o add_v word_n to_o it_o and_o usher_v in_o that_o sacrilegious_a attempt_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n with_o say_v some_o great_a master_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n when_o these_o gentleman_n talk_v of_o syriack_n arabic_a coptick_n armenian_n they_o may_v easy_o impose_v upon_o the_o simple_a but_o for_o greek_a which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o profession_n in_o this_o kingdom_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o his_o own_o proper_a blood_n be_v with_o his_o son_n blood_n to_o make_v the_o falsification_n authentic_a by_o attribute_v it_o to_o the_o great_a master_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n and_o call_v this_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o solid_a objection_n be_v a_o piece_n of_o a_o incomprehensible_a confidence_n 3_o socinus_n and_o chrellius_n be_v more_o dexterous_a who_o be_v press_v by_o this_o text_n very_o fair_o lay_v aside_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d own_o wherein_o lie_v the_o stress_n of_o the_o argument_n but_o call_v it_o as_o erasmus_n have_v do_v the_o blood_n of_o god_n the_o father_n that_o be_v the_o blood_n which_o god_n give_v for_o the_o
will_v make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n rev._n 2.23_o i_o be_o he_o who_o search_v the_o reins_o and_o heart_n and_o i_o will_v give_v to_o every_o one_o of_o you_o according_a to_o your_o work_n compare_v these_o text_n with_o those_o by_o which_o god_n discover_v his_o divine_a qualification_n to_o we_o and_o you_o will_v be_v force_v to_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v not_o more_o full_a and_o home_o then_o these_o the_o answer_n to_o most_o of_o these_o text_n as_o most_o of_o socinian_n answer_v be_v all_o frame_v to_o elude_v and_o not_o to_o resolve_v the_o difficulty_n they_o consist_v in_o a_o bad_a reason_n and_o in_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n strange_o misunderstand_v and_o worse_o apply_v the_o reason_n be_v brief_a hist_n pag._n 44_o and_o 36._o that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o have_v or_o shall_v have_v of_o any_o one_o be_v secret_n thought_n be_v a_o revelation_n make_v to_o he_o by_o god_n as_o it_o be_v also_o and_o may_v be_v to_o other_o prophet_n the_o text_n which_o right_a or_o wrong_n they_o repeat_v at_o every_o turn_n be_v revel_v 1.1_o the_o revelation_n of_o j.c._n which_o god_n give_v to_o he_o to_o show_v to_o his_o servant_n the_o reason_n be_v worth_a nothing_o for_o god_n reveal_v of_o man_n thought_n to_o a_o prophet_n no_o not_o the_o full_a revelation_n that_o ever_o be_v make_v can_v come_v up_o to_o that_o extent_n which_o belong_v to_o none_o but_o god_n i_o be_o he_o who_o search_v the_o reins_o and_o the_o heart_n no_o instance_n in_o scripture_n can_v be_v produce_v of_o this_o though_o god_n have_v be_v please_v to_o reveal_v to_o a_o man_n the_o thought_n of_o another_o man_n 2_o king_n 6.12_o yet_o this_o be_v ever_o particular_a and_o declare_v that_o god_n do_v it_o then_o none_o ever_o assume_v to_o himself_o to_o make_v manifest_a the_o counsel_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o man_n it_o be_v so_o much_o god_n prerogative_n and_o character_n that_o by_o it_o he_o be_v know_v to_o we_o their_o explication_n of_o rev._n 1.1_o be_v as_o bad_a they_o make_v it_o to_o suppose_v ignorance_n in_o christ_n who_o we_o have_v prove_v to_o know_v all_o thing_n and_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o that_o omniscience_n so_o clear_o speak_v of_o before_o have_v these_o gentleman_n vouchsafe_v to_o lend_v one_o ear_n to_o the_o father_n and_o to_o the_o latter_a divine_n of_o the_o great_a reputation_n they_o will_v have_v meet_v with_o these_o judicious_a observation_n on_o this_o text._n one_a it_o show_v at_o most_o that_o whatsoever_o christ_n know_v he_o know_v it_o from_o the_o father_n receive_v his_o knowledge_n as_o he_o receive_v his_o essence_n that_o be_v from_o everlasting_a 2_o it_o prove_v that_o god_n reveal_v nothing_o to_o man_n but_o by_o the_o intervention_n of_o c._n j._n the_o eternal_a and_o only_a mediator_n between_o god_n and_o man._n 1_o tim._n 3.5_o in_o who_o we_o have_v boldness_n and_o access_n with_o confidence_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o eph._n 3.12_o by_o who_o we_o have_v access_n by_o faith_n into_o his_o grace_n rom._n 5.2_o who_o be_v to_o we_o the_o fountain_n of_o all_o knowledge_n for_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o joh._n 1.18_o and_o v._o 16._o and_o of_o his_o fullness_n we_o have_v all_o receive_v the_o sense_n then_o of_o the_o text_n be_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v in_o this_o as_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n that_o man_n may_v come_v to_o god_n by_o he_o and_o be_v inform_v of_o the_o future_a event_n lay_v in_o this_o sacred_a book_n that_o that_o show_v the_o solidity_n if_o this_o interpretation_n be_v that_o no_o part_n of_o the_o sacred_a write_n have_v clear_a testimony_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n than_o this_o and_o god_n will_v not_o contradict_v in_o the_o very_a first_o verse_n what_o he_o have_v so_o plain_o assert_v afterward_o the_o very_a text_n itself_o if_o serious_o consider_v be_v a_o proof_n of_o christ_n equality_n with_o god_n by_o his_o be_v above_o angel_n who_o ministry_n he_o so_o often_o command_v in_o this_o book_n and_o above_o man_n who_o be_v call_v here_o his_o servant_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o servant_n of_o he_o christ_n no_o intelligent_a substance_n be_v above_o the_o angelical_a or_o human_a but_o the_o divine_a i_o be_o afraid_a i_o have_v tire_v you_o and_o will_v therefore_o draw_v to_o a_o conclusion_n if_o you_o take_v together_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v i_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o you_o will_v be_v satisfy_v that_o socinianism_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o that_o revelation_n which_o god_n have_v make_v of_o himself_o i_o have_v lay_v before_o you_o two_o sort_n of_o proof_n very_o many_o of_o they_o be_v direct_v and_o show_v invincible_o that_o christ_n be_v god_n the_o other_o be_v indirect_a but_o yet_o of_o that_o force_n and_o clearness_n that_o they_o make_v it_o evident_a that_o all_o this_o can_v be_v say_v of_o a_o creature_n how_o excellent_a soever_o no_o creature_n in_o the_o utmost_a extent_n of_o perfection_n imaginable_a be_v capable_a of_o what_o the_o scripture_n attribute_n to_o christ_n the_o first_o read_v of_o the_o socinian_n write_n will_v impose_v upon_o a_o unwary_a reader_n the_o second_o and_o three_o will_v have_v quite_o another_o effect_n and_o discover_v a_o incredible_a weakness_n they_o oppose_v a_o few_o misunderstand_v place_n to_o the_o stream_n of_o scripture_n these_o they_o urge_v with_o obstinacy_n and_o instead_o of_o reduce_v these_o few_o text_n to_o the_o vast_a many_o assertion_n of_o the_o sacred_a writer_n and_o give_v they_o that_o sense_n which_o they_o be_v real_o capable_a of_o they_o strain_z and_o endeavour_v to_o reduce_v to_o they_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o divine_a truth_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v more_o unjust_a or_o unsincere_a in_o human_a dispute_v such_o a_o way_n of_o argue_v will_v be_v laugh_v out_o of_o door_n how_o much_o less_o be_v it_o to_o be_v suffer_v in_o a_o controversy_n of_o so_o sacred_a a_o nature_n as_o this_o be_v they_o catch_v at_o moses_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o god_n to_o pharaoh_n at_o the_o angel_n be_v call_v elohim_n at_o magistrate_n have_v the_o name_n of_o god_n give_v they_o and_o on_o this_o they_o build_v assertion_n which_o give_v the_o lie_n to_o the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n they_o have_v rak_v all_o that_o the_o ancient_a and_o modern_a heretic_n have_v blaspheme_v against_o the_o faith_n and_o this_o they_o bold_o oppose_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a most_o universal_a and_o most_o venerable_a council_n to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o pious_a and_o learned_a father_n the_o holy_a jesus_n be_v the_o same_o yesterday_o to_o day_n and_o for_o ever_o his_o church_n have_v be_v in_o possession_n above_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n of_o adore_v and_o pray_v to_o he_o his_o infinite_a merit_n be_v the_o only_a comfort_n and_o security_n of_o die_a sinner_n the_o eternal_a word_n make_v flesh_n have_v be_v all_o along_o the_o great_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o we_o have_v to_o deal_v now_o with_o a_o sort_n of_o unreasonable_a man_n who_o pretend_v to_o unravil_v all_o this_o and_o lay_v the_o divine_a fabric_n to_o the_o ground_n by_o mean_a shift_n poor_a evasion_n and_o by_o dilapidate_v plain_a text_n with_o endless_a and_o groundless_a criticism_n i_o hope_v that_o you_o will_v be_v just_a to_o yourself_o and_o make_v all_o the_o haste_n you_o can_v to_o return_v to_o the_o faith_n to_o deny_v the_o lord_n that_o have_v buy_v we_o be_v a_o execrable_a piece_n of_o ingratitude_n and_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o people_n who_o read_v the_o scripture_n with_o any_o share_n of_o humility_n and_o sincerity_n shall_v fall_v into_o that_o excess_n that_o god_n will_v open_v your_o eye_n that_o you_o may_v see_v the_o glorious_a gospel_n of_o his_o son_n i_o c._n and_o give_v you_o grace_n to_o subject_v whatsoever_o exalt_v itself_o in_o you_o against_o his_o knowledge_n and_o service_n be_v the_o passionate_a wish_n of_o sir_n your_o humble_a and_o faithful_a servant_n l._n finis_fw-la the_o reader_n be_v humble_o desire_v to_o excuse_v the_o error_n of_o the_o press_n by_o reason_n of_o my_o not_o be_v in_o town_n book_n late_o print_v for_o thomas_n bennet_n the_o life_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n of_o orange_n from_o william_n the_o great_a founder_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o the_o unite_a province_n write_a in_o french_a by_o the_o baron_n maurier_n in_o 1682_o who_o father_n be_v twenty_o year_n ambassador_n at_o the_o hague_n and_o publish_v at_o paris_n by_o order_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o which_o be_v add_v the_o life_n of_o his_o present_a majesty_n king_n william_n the_o three_o by_o mr._n thomas_n brown_n together_o with_o each_o prince_n head_n before_o his_o life_n do_v from_o original_a draught_n by_o mr._n robert_n white_a mr._n bossu_n treatise_n of_o the_o epic_a poem_n contain_v curious_a reflection_n very_o useful_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o right_a understanding_n and_o judge_v of_o the_o excellency_n of_o homer_n and_o virgil_n do_v into_o english_a with_o some_o reflection_n on_o prince_n arthur_n by_o w._n s._n to_o which_o be_v add_v a_o essay_n on_o satyr_n by_o mr._n dacier_n and_o a_o treatise_n of_o pastoral_n poetry_n by_o mounseur_fw-fr fontanelle_n monsieur_fw-fr rapine_n reflection_n upon_o aristotle_n poetry_n english_v by_o mr._n rymer_n together_o with_o some_o reflection_n on_o our_o modern_a poet_n a_o sermon_n preach_v at_o whitehall_n on_o sunday_n sept_n 8._o 1695._o be_v the_o day_n of_o thanksgiving_n for_o the_o take_n of_o namur_n by_o j._n adam_n a._n m._n rector_n of_o st._n alban_n woodstreet_n publish_a by_o order_n of_o the_o lord_n justice_n the_o foolish_a abuse_n and_o wise_a use_n of_o riches_n a_o sermon_n preach_v in_o the_o parish_n church_n of_o bromsgrove_n in_o worcestershire_n may_v 1._o 1695._o by_o will._n talbot_n d._n d._n and_o dean_n of_o worcester_n malebranch_n treatise_n concern_v the_o search_n after_o truth_n the_o whole_a work_n complete_a to_o which_o be_v add_v a_o treatise_n of_o nature_n and_o grace_n by_o the_o same_o author_n be_v a_o consequence_n of_o his_o principle_n contain_v in_o the_o search_n together_o with_o f._n malebranch_n defence_n against_o mr._n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr ville_fw-fr and_o several_a other_o adversary_n all_o english_v by_o t._n taylor_n m._n a._n of_o magdalen_n college_n and_o print_v at_o oxford_n in_o folio_n a_o voyage_n to_o the_o world_n of_o des_n cartes_n english_v by_o t._n taylor_n m._n a._n of_o magdalen-college_n in_o the_o press_n sermon_n upon_o several_a occasion_n by_o r._n meggot_n d._n d._n late_a dean_n of_o winchester_n
luciferum_fw-la genui_fw-la te_fw-la before_o the_o morning_n star_n be_v i_o have_v beget_v thou_o the_o four_o his_o eternal_a priesthood_n thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedeck_v wherein_o be_v imply_v that_o intercession_n mediation_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o himself_o which_o have_v he_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a man_n must_v have_v be_v ineffectual_a these_o gentleman_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o 2_o and_o 4._o verse_n and_o in_o my_o opinion_n answer_v strange_o the_o one_a and_o the_o 3d._n what_o they_o say_v to_o the_o one_a in_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 18._o consist_v in_o this_o one_a that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v david_n in_o spirit_n call_v he_o lord_n say_v the_o lord_n say_v unto_o etc._n etc._n that_o be_v david_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n foresee_v christ_n call_v he_o his_o lord_n not_o because_o christ_n be_v god_n for_o then_o himself_o can_v have_v make_v his_o enemy_n his_o footstool_n but_o because_o not_o only_o the_o spirit_n of_o david_n and_o of_o all_o saint_n but_o even_o angel_n be_v to_o be_v make_v subject_n to_o he_o as_o the_o reward_n of_o his_o most_o holy_a life_n and_o obsequious_a and_o acceptable_a death_n 2_o that_o when_o the_o psalmist_n say_v the_o lord_n say_v unto_o my_o lord_n it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v thus_o the_o lord_n have_v in_o his_o decree_n say_v or_o he_o have_v decree_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o i_o appeal_v to_o themselves_o whether_o this_o be_v to_o answer_v or_o only_o elude_v a_o objection_n for_o it_o be_v notorious_a that_o the_o spirit_n in_o which_o david_n speak_v be_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n david_n be_v a_o prophet_n speak_v what_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o he_o it_o be_v false_a that_o he_o call_v christ_n his_o lord_n or_o that_o he_o speak_v to_o christ_n he_o call_v christ_n lord_n say_v our_o saviour_n but_o not_o his_o lord_n this_o be_v a_o real_a mistake_n and_o the_o reason_n give_v for_o it_o of_o the_o spirit_n of_o david_n of_o saint_n of_o angel_n make_v subject_a to_o he_o be_v another_o he_o must_v speak_v of_o christ_n as_o god_n or_o else_o the_o prophecy_n say_v nothing_o the_o lord_n in_o one_o place_n be_v of_o the_o same_o importance_n and_o signification_n as_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o other_o neither_o the_o word_n nor_o the_o sense_n nor_o our_o saviour_n give_v to_o david_n any_o other_o part_n in_o the_o prophecy_n but_o the_o relate_n that_o the_o lord_n the_o father_n have_v say_v to_o the_o lord_n the_o son_n the_o christ_n sit_v thou_o on_o my_o right_a hand_n a_o argument_n which_o invincible_o prove_v the_o son_n coeternal_a and_o coequal_a to_o the_o father_n nor_o do_v the_o say_n till_o i_o make_v thy_o enemy_n thy_o footstool_n take_v any_o thing_n off_o its_o force_n since_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 15.25_o say_v of_o the_o son_n himself_o that_o he_o must_v reign_v till_o he_o have_v put_v all_o enemy_n under_o his_o foot_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n that_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o my_o lord_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o lord_n have_v say_v in_o his_o decree_n or_o have_v decree_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o be_v a_o wild_a strain_v unnatural_a and_o new_a explication_n if_o man_n will_v give_v themselves_o the_o liberty_n thus_o to_o comment_v on_o the_o most_o express_a and_o clear_a text_n of_o scripture_n nothing_o can_v be_v sacred_a or_o certain_a in_o religion_n our_o saviour_n ask_v the_o pharisee_n matt._n 2.24_o what_o they_o think_v of_o christ_n who_o son_n be_v he_o they_o answer_v he_o plain_o the_o son_n of_o david_n christ_n reply_v again_o how_o then_o do_v david_n call_v he_o lord_n if_o he_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o son_n of_o david_n how_o do_v david_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v lord_n and_o this_o by_o the_o great_a authority_n in_o the_o world_n even_o the_o lord_n call_v he_o so_o if_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o david_n without_o run_v to_o a_o decree_n which_o indeed_o shall_v rather_o be_v admit_v here_o than_o he_o be_v without_o a_o decree_n the_o lord_n be_v as_o much_o the_o one_o by_o nature_n as_o the_o other_o these_o gentleman_n be_v desire_v to_o produce_v any_o one_o of_o the_o father_n or_o ancient_a writer_n who_o have_v understand_v this_o place_n of_o any_o such_o imaginary_a decree_n the_o three_o verse_n be_v so_o press_v that_o all_o they_o have_v to_o say_v to_o it_o be_v that_o both_o the_o place_n be_v obscure_a and_o the_o many_o version_n make_v of_o it_o they_o like_v that_o of_o castalio_n best_o which_o cut_v the_o gordian_a knot_n and_o substitute_n other_o word_n and_o sense_n to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n i_o think_v that_o the_o greek_a be_v very_o clear_a the_o old_a latin_a very_o clear_a justin_n martyr_n tertullian_n st._n chrysostom_n st._n jerom_n st._n austin_n and_o most_o of_o the_o father_n very_o clear_a who_o have_v read_v as_o we_o have_v say_v before_o and_o be_v to_o prefer_v to_o a_o version_n as_o new_a and_o as_o inconsiderable_a as_o its_o author_n in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o isaias_n v._n 6_o 7._o we_o have_v these_o word_n unto_o we_o a_o child_n be_v bear_v unto_o we_o a_o son_n be_v give_v and_o the_o government_n shall_v be_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v wonderful_a counsellor_n the_o mighty_a god_n the_o everlasting_a father_n the_o prince_n of_o peace_n that_o they_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o messiah_n the_o chaldee_n paraphrase_n and_o several_a learned_a jew_n have_v positive_o assert_v from_o they_o eusebius_n basil_n the_o great_a theodoret_n st._n cyrill_n procopius_n st._n jerom_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o father_n have_v prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o indeed_o those_o epithet_n which_o make_v up_o the_o character_n of_o this_o son_n that_o be_v give_v can_v become_v no_o creature_n they_o be_v all_o the_o name_n which_o belong_v to_o god_n and_o by_o they_o as_o he_o reveal_v himself_o to_o man_n which_o of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n can_v be_v wonderful_a or_o secret_a mysterious_a as_o the_o angel_n express_v the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o manoah_n jud._n 13.18_o which_o can_v be_v the_o councillor_n the_o director_n the_o guide_n the_o light_n from_o whence_o all_o wisdom_n be_v derive_v which_o can_v be_v the_o mighty_a god_n the_o god_n of_o strength_n and_o power_n which_o can_v be_v the_o everlasting_a father_n or_o as_o st._n jerom_n read_v the_o father_n of_o the_o age_n to_o come_v that_o be_v the_o author_n and_o giver_n of_o immortality_n which_o can_v be_v the_o peaceable_a prince_n or_o the_o prince_n of_o peace_n in_o who_o hand_n be_v our_o present_a or_o eternal_a peace_n in_o a_o word_n to_o which_o of_o we_o mortal_n can_v any_o of_o those_o emphatical_a expression_n be_v attribute_v without_o absurdity_n or_o blasphemy_n to_o this_o those_o gentleman_n answer_v brief_a hist_n pag._n 20_o one_a that_o this_o can_v be_v no_o prophecy_n since_o isaias_n speak_v of_o a_o prince_n actual_o bear_v and_o the_o prophet_n live_v 700_o year_n before_o christ_n 2_o that_o this_o text_n be_v never_o apply_v to_o christ_n by_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n 3_o that_o the_o text_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o hezekiah_n 4_o that_o it_o be_v extravagant_o render_v into_o english_a in_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n they_o say_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n only_o add_v this_o flourish_n that_o they_o affect_v no_o monstrosity_n but_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o obvious_a reason_n and_o possibility_n of_o thing_n for_o the_o one_a that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o prophecy_n since_o it_o speak_v of_o a_o prince_n actual_o bear_v be_v to_o suppose_v that_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v prove_v and_o can_v never_o be_v certain_o make_v out_o but_o grant_v that_o it_o can_v have_v these_o gentleman_n forget_v what_o they_o say_v in_o their_o answer_n to_o a_o authority_n of_o the_o 45._o ps_n 6_o 7._o that_o the_o prophetical_a poet_n at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o praise_v and_o court_v solomon_n who_o be_v certain_o then_o actual_o bear_v may_v also_o prophesy_v of_o christ_n a_o prince_n then_o may_v be_v actual_o bear_v and_o what_o be_v say_v of_o he_o may_v also_o be_v a_o prophecy_n st._n austin_n against_o faustus_n lib._n 12._o cap._n 46._o pretend_v and_o real_o in_o a_o very_a solid_a way_n of_o reason_v that_o not_o only_o the_o prophet_n do_v announce_v christ_n but_o the_o very_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o very_a people_n their_o very_a government_n and_o administration_n be_v all_o a_o prophecy_n per_fw-la propheticam_fw-la gentem_fw-la per_fw-la propheticum_fw-la populum_fw-la per_fw-la propheticum_fw-la regnum_fw-la and_o yet_o the_o one_o actual_o in_o be_v the_o other_o actual_o bear_v before_o
christ_n for_o the_o second_o that_o this_o text_n be_v never_o apply_v to_o christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n shall_v this_o be_v grant_v the_o text_n will_v still_o preserve_v its_o authority_n our_o adversary_n be_v preson_n of_o too_o much_o learning_n to_o pretend_v that_o there_o be_v no_o prophecy_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o old_a but_o what_o be_v apply_v to_o he_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o we_o may_v say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o text_n often_o and_o more_o full_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o than_o this_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o though_o it_o be_v not_o formal_o cite_v as_o some_o other_o be_v yet_o every_o part_n of_o it_o be_v find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o prophet_n say_v that_o he_o be_v wonderful_a secret_a mysterious_a st._n paul_n say_v eph._n 1.26_o 27._o that_o he_o be_v the_o mystery_n which_o have_v be_v hide_v from_o age_n and_o generation_n but_o now_o be_v make_v manifest_a to_o his_o saint_n the_o prophet_n call_v he_o the_o councillor_n the_o apostle_n say_v colos_n 2.3_o that_o in_o he_o be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n we_o believe_v say_v origen_n lib._n 3._o adv_n celsum_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o christianity_n of_o this_o our_o jesus_n that_o he_o be_v god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o very_a word_n itself_o the_o very_a wisdom_n itself_o the_o very_a truth_n itself_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o mighty_a god_n or_o the_o god_n of_o strength_n st._n joh._n rev._n 5.12_o assure_v that_o power_n strength_n glory_n and_o honour_n be_v he_o the_o prophet_n call_v he_o the_o everlasting_a father_n or_o as_o st._n jerom_n the_o father_n of_o the_o age_n to_o come_v the_o author_n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n ch_n 5.9_o call_v he_o the_o author_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n the_o prophet_n say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n the_o apostle_n style_v he_o eph._n 2.14_o our_o peace_n who_o have_v make_v both_o one_o and_o have_v break_v down_o the_o middle_a wall_n of_o partition_n between_o we_o for_o the_o 3d_o that_o this_o text_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o hezekias_n these_o gentleman_n shall_v have_v take_v notice_n that_o st._n jerom_n have_v invincible_o prove_v on_o isay_n 7.14_o that_o this_o prophecy_n of_o a_o child_n that_o be_v bear_v and_o of_o son_n that_o be_v give_v can_v by_o no_o mean_n agree_v with_o hezekias_n who_o at_o the_o take_n of_o samaria_n by_o the_o assyrian_n be_v one_o and_o thirty_o year_n old_a a_o difficulty_n which_o can_v be_v overcome_v and_o be_v oversee_v by_o the_o learned_a grotius_n from_o who_o thy_o have_n borrow_a the_o objection_n for_o the_o four_o that_o it_o be_v extravagant_o render_v into_o english_a then_o the_o septuagint_n be_v very_o extravagant_a who_o contrary_a to_o these_o gentleman_n assertion_n who_o deny_v that_o they_o read_v the_o mighty_a god_n have_v in_o all_o the_o edition_n that_o i_o have_v see_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o strong_a the_o mighty_a god_n then_o st._n irenaeus_n be_v extravagant_a who_o read_v it_o thus_o lib._n 4._o c._n 66._o then_o be_v the_o great_a ignatius_n extravagant_a who_o cite_v it_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n epist_n ad_fw-la antioch_n both_o these_o father_n writing_n long_o before_o any_o of_o these_o dispute_n then_o be_v procopius_n extravagant_a who_o on_o this_o very_a place_n be_v positive_a that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o his_o time_n in_o the_o best_a copy_n of_o the_o septuagint_n and_o more_o extravagant_a again_o to_o assert_v on_o isay_n 10.21_o that_o the_o word_n mighty_a god_n in_o that_o verse_n of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n and_o be_v undoubted_o speak_v of_o god_n be_v in_o the_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a the_o self_n same_o as_o in_o this_o place_n then_o theodoret_n one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o father_n and_o one_o of_o the_o best_a critic_n be_v strange_o extravagant_a who_o accuse_v aquila_n of_o falsification_n in_o render_v the_o hebrew_n without_o the_o word_n god_n then_o eusebius_n up_o and_o down_o in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o demonstration_n who_o read_v as_o we_o do_v and_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n after_o their_o own_o interpreter_n who_o have_v render_v it_o thus_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o most_o translation_n be_v wild_o extravagant_a what_o become_v then_o of_o the_o flourish_n who_o affect_v monstrosity_n who_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o obvious_a reason_n and_o possibility_n of_o thing_n these_o gentleman_n or_o we_o be_v it_o not_o more_o candid_a and_o natural_a more_o possible_a and_o rational_a to_o receive_v and_o submit_v to_o a_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n understand_v as_o we_o do_v by_o the_o pious_a and_o learned_a part_n of_o mankind_n then_o to_o strain_v and_o sweat_n and_o drag_v in_o rash_a criticism_n and_o unnatural_a explication_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o doctrine_n monstruous_a and_o impossible_a the_o mere_a humanity_n of_o j._n christ_n in_o the_o 11_o of_o isaias_n be_v a_o magnificent_a description_n of_o the_o messiah_n and_o own_a to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o rabbin_n it_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o a_o proof_n of_o his_o divinity_n by_o most_o ancient_a and_o modern_a interpreter_n the_o one_a verse_n be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n and_o take_v our_o nature_n there_o shall_v come_v forth_o a_o rod_n out_o of_o the_o stem_n of_o jesse_n and_o a_o branch_n shall_v grow_v out_o of_o his_o root_n which_o the_o apostle_n act._n 13._o v._n 23._o have_v show_v to_o be_v verify_v of_o this_o man_n seed_n have_v god_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n raise_v unto_o israel_n a_o saviour_n jesus_n the_o 3_o 4_o 5._o verse_n open_v the_o end_n of_o his_o come_n into_o the_o world_n the_o 6_o 7_o 8_o 9_o be_v the_o happy_a effect_n of_o his_o incarnation_n the_o infinite_a blessing_n of_o joy_n peace_n and_o security_n adumbrate_v by_o the_o combine_v together_o of_o the_o most_o feroce_a and_o brutish_a with_o the_o mild_a and_o fearful_a creature_n the_o 10_o be_v a_o conclusion_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o set_v before_o we_o the_o holy_a jesus_n as_o the_o hope_n of_o all_o nation_n he_o shall_v stand_v for_o a_o ensign_n of_o the_o people_n to_o it_o shall_v the_o gentile_n seek_v and_o his_o rest_n shall_v be_v glorious_a what_o can_v the_o seek_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o that_o glorious_a rest_n be_v but_o the_o address_n of_o man_n to_o he_o in_o their_o humble_a adoration_n the_o send_n of_o their_o prayer_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o grace_n their_o confidence_n that_o there_o be_v no_o name_n under_o heaven_n but_o he_o by_o which_o they_o can_v be_v save_v this_o explication_n be_v not_o i_o but_o st._n paul_n who_o rom._n 15.12_o read_v this_o text_n after_o the_o septuagint_n say_v there_o shall_v be_v a_o root_n of_o jesse_n and_o he_o that_o shall_v rise_v to_o reign_v over_o the_o gentile_n in_o he_o shall_v the_o gentile_n trust_v this_o be_v not_o catch_v at_o the_o word_n god_n but_o i_o will_v fain_o be_v satisfy_v if_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n if_o he_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a creature_n whether_o to_o hope_v in_o he_o to_o trust_v that_o be_v to_o put_v all_o our_o confidence_n in_o he_o as_o the_o prophet_n say_v we_o shall_v and_o the_o apostle_n we_o ought_v to_o do_v be_v not_o a_o most_o damnable_a idolatry_n these_o gentleman_n have_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o this_o text_n have_v say_v nothing_o to_o it_o they_o may_v consult_v grotius_n their_o friend_n in_o distress_n who_o against_o invincible_a reason_n the_o express_a authority_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o christian_a interpreter_n explain_v this_o text_n of_o hezekiah_n what_o can_v be_v more_o positive_a than_o the_o 35._o of_o isai_n v._o 4._o say_v to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o a_o fearful_a heart_n be_v strong_a fear_v not_o behold_v your_o god_n will_v come_v with_o vengeance_n even_o god_n with_o a_o recompense_n he_o will_v come_v and_o save_v you_o the_o five_o verse_n be_v a_o character_n of_o his_o come_n which_o no_o mortal_a can_v personate_v your_o god_n will_v come_v with_o miraculous_a work_n with_o a_o divine_a energy_n he_o will_v give_v sight_n to_o the_o blind_a and_o hear_v to_o the_o deaf_a etc._n etc._n to_o christ_n do_v all_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n give_v witness_n that_o he_o have_v do_v all_o this_o and_o that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n that_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o the_o misery_n of_o a_o laborious_a life_n christ_n himself_o take_v no_o other_o way_n to_o convince_v the_o baptist_n matt._n 11.4_o 5_o 6._o that_o
7._o be_v a_o repeat_v assurance_n that_o god_n will_v put_v a_o end_n to_o their_o captivity_n the_o 8._o be_v a_o solemn_a declaration_n that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o protect_v they_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n assure_v they_o that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o revenge_v their_o quarrel_n and_o v._o 9_o that_o he_o will_v certain_o do_v it_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v evident_o see_v that_o he_o be_v send_v by_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n for_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n after_o the_o glory_n have_v he_o send_v i_o to_o the_o nation_n which_o spoil_v you_o for_o behold_v i_o will_v shake_v my_o hand_n upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v a_o spoil_n to_o their_o servant_n and_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n have_v send_v i_o that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n be_v the_o almighty_a that_o he_o and_o none_o but_o he_o assume_v that_o name_n be_v grant_v of_o all_o side_n it_o be_v also_o grant_v that_o god_n be_v one_o and_o that_o beside_o he_o there_o be_v no_o god_n and_o yet_o this_o text_n represent_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n send_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n a_o expression_n parallel_n to_o that_o of_o ps_n 110.1_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o my_o lord_n it_o must_v be_v say_v then_o that_o though_o a_o plurality_n of_o god_n be_v inconsistent_a yet_o certain_o the_o divine_a nature_n admit_v of_o more_o than_o one_o divine_a person_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n who_o send_v be_v the_o father_n that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n who_o be_v send_v be_v the_o eternal_a word_n the_o son_n and_o that_o though_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n yet_o that_o revelation_n which_o he_o have_v make_v of_o himself_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v several_a person_n in_o that_o one_o god_n the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag_n 22._o answer_n one_a that_o these_o word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a and_o english_a be_v hardly_o sense_n 2_o that_o neither_o of_o these_o word_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n be_v word_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n himself_o but_o of_o the_o second_o angel_n who_o at_o v._o 3_o 4._o speak_v to_o the_o first_o angel_n and_o to_o zechariah_n 3_o that_o the_o verse_n shall_v have_v be_v thus_o render_v from_o the_o hebrew_n thus_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n afterward_o shall_v be_v glory_n instead_o of_o after_o the_o glory_n i_o e._n after_o you_o be_v depart_v out_o of_o babylon_n v._o 7._o you_o shall_v have_v honour_n and_o peace_n and_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n have_v send_v i_o i._n e._n to_o punish_v they_o and_o give_v you_o peace_n and_o glory_n to_o the_o one_a and_o 3d_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o accuse_v translation_n exact_o agreeable_a to_o the_o original_a of_o hardly_o be_v sense_n when_o they_o can_v be_v make_v to_o bear_v with_o our_o opinion_n in_o this_o the_o author_n be_v unhappy_a that_o the_o letter_n of_o this_o text_n be_v plain_a and_o have_v scarce_o any_o difficulty_n what_o he_o say_v afterward_o shall_v be_v glory_n may_v be_v a_o sort_n of_o a_o paraphrase_n but_o be_v certain_o no_o translation_n but_o the_o weakness_n of_o this_o will_v be_v evident_a by_o the_o reply_n to_o the_o second_o he_o insist_o that_o thus_o say_v the_o lord_n host_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n himself_o but_o of_o the_o second_o angel_n who_o speak_v to_o the_o first_o i_o beg_v to_o know_v whether_o it_o be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n who_o say_v v._o 10.11_o sing_v and_o rejoice_v o_o daughter_n of_o zion_n for_o lo_o i_o come_v and_o i_o will_v dwell_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o say_v the_o lord_n can_v any_o one_o who_o be_v not_o obstinate_o resolve_v to_o contradict_v all_o mankind_n say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o angel_n speak_v to_o another_o and_o many_o nation_n shall_v be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n in_o that_o day_n and_o shall_v be_v my_o people_n and_o i_o will_v dwell_v in_o the_o inidst_n of_o thou_o and_o thou_o shall_v know_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n have_v send_v i_o be_v it_o not_o he_o who_o be_v send_v by_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n who_o people_n they_o shall_v be_v who_o will_v dwell_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o once_o more_o be_v it_o a_o angel_n to_o who_o many_o nation_n shall_v be_v join_v and_o who_o will_v take_v they_o for_o his_o people_n he_o that_o speak_v be_v without_o any_o evasion_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o he_o plain_o and_o positive_o declare_v that_o the_o lord_n of_o host_n have_v send_v he_o this_o author_n do_v catch_v at_o a_o kind_n of_o a_o notion_n which_o he_o think_v to_o find_v in_o the_o verse_n before_o but_o be_v so_o absolute_o overthrow_v by_o these_o last_o that_o no_o rational_a solution_n can_v be_v offer_v to_o they_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o hammer_v text_n urge_v by_o the_o father_n against_o the_o arrian_n and_o understand_v by_o the_o jew_n of_o the_o messiah_n the_o 12_o of_o zechariah_n not_o only_o represent_v christ_n as_o god_n but_o even_o god_n suffer_v for_o we_o it_o suppose_v his_o incarnation_n and_o consequent_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n and_o the_o divinity_n be_v impassable_a it_o show_v palpable_o that_o he_o have_v assume_v a_o body_n to_o suffer_v in_o it_o be_v one_o of_o those_o text_n which_o prove_v themselves_o and_o be_v plain_a than_o any_o sort_n of_o explication_n v._o 10._o the_o almighty_a speak_v thus_o i_o will_v pour_v upon_o the_o house_n of_o david_n and_o upon_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n and_o they_o shall_v look_v upon_o i_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v that_o none_o but_o the_o only_a true_a god_n pour_v the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o supplication_n be_v indisputable_o true_a it_o be_v the_o act_n of_o a_o infinite_a power_n and_o mercy_n which_o can_v be_v in_o none_o but_o he_o and_o yet_o that_o very_a god_n say_v that_o they_o have_v pierce_v he_o to_o prevent_v the_o understanding_n of_o this_o allegorical_o pierce_v he_o with_o our_o sin_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v of_o old_a and_o of_o late_a in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o poor_a shift_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 22._o of_o grotius_n before_o he_o and_o of_o the_o blasphemous_a theodore_n of_o mopsw_a before_o grotius_n st._n john_n tell_v we_o who_o be_v he_o that_o have_v be_v and_o shall_v be_v see_v thus_o pierce_v rev._n 1.7_o behold_v he_o come_v with_o cloud_n and_o every_o eye_n shall_v see_v he_o and_o they_o also_o which_o pierce_v he_o a_o description_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n it_o be_v to_o give_v god_n the_o lie_n to_o say_v that_o he_o have_v not_o be_v pierce_v since_o he_o do_v so_o positive_o assure_v it_o they_o shall_v look_v on_o i_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v but_o the_o scripture_n show_v this_o to_o have_v be_v do_v in_o christ_n therefore_o christ_n be_v that_o god_n who_o have_v be_v pierce_v these_o gentleman_n will_v say_v no_o because_o god_n may_v say_v that_o he_o have_v be_v pierce_v and_o christ_n too_o may_v have_v be_v pierce_v and_o yet_o be_v no_o god_n but_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o this_o be_v a_o direct_a prophecy_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o i_fw-mi where_o lie_v the_o stress_n of_o the_o argument_n be_v speak_v of_o christ_n and_o of_o none_o else_o it_o must_v be_v literal_o true_a that_o he_o have_v be_v pierce_v and_o that_o he_o be_v god_n the_o famous_a passage_n of_o joh._n 19.37_o be_v express_v to_o this_o the_o evangelist_n have_v show_v all_o along_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o prophecy_n in_o christ_n fix_v to_o he_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n and_o again_o another_o scripture_n say_v they_o shall_v look_v on_o he_o who_o they_o have_v pierce_v this_o be_v so_o decisive_a of_o the_o question_n that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag_n 22._o reduce_v himself_o to_o this_o miserable_a shift_n that_o this_o be_v apply_v to_o but_o not_o interpret_v of_o christ_n these_o gentleman_n who_o pretend_v so_o much_o to_o reason_n be_v now_o and_o then_o unreasonable_a can_v any_o thing_n be_v apply_v to_o christ_n and_o not_o interpret_v of_o he_o or_o interpret_v and_o not_o apply_v to_o he_o they_o complain_v that_o we_o talk_v gibberish_n and_o have_v a_o jargon_v of_o our_o own_o pray_v what_o be_v this_o or_o will_v they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v only_o to_o allude_v at_o the_o place_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o not_o to_o interpret_v who_o can_v advance_v this_o with_o any_o candour_n that_o read_v the_o place_n cite_v st._n john_n have_v prove_v all_o along_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n
but_o that_o for_o all_o this_o he_o be_v a_o man_n and_o no_o more_o than_o a_o man_n he_o have_v no_o other_o existence_n no_o other_o nature_n we_o on_o the_o contrary_a beside_o all_o these_o title_n insist_v on_o that_o of_o nature_n we_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n after_o a_o manner_n incommunicable_a to_o any_o create_v be_v i_o suppose_v that_o if_o the_o pre-existence_n and_o pre-eternity_n of_o the_o son_n can_v be_v prove_v his_o equality_n with_o the_o father_n his_o sameness_n of_o nature_n and_o a_o communication_n of_o those_o name_n by_o which_o the_o only_a true_a god_n be_v know_v to_o we_o the_o assertion_n will_v be_v justify_v for_o all_o that_o we_o conceive_v of_o god_n be_v that_o he_o exist_v before_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o have_v neither_o beginning_n nor_o end_v that_o he_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o be_v infinite_a in_o perfection_n that_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n and_o in_o a_o most_o eminent_a way_n the_o lord_n of_o all_o that_o be_v if_o this_o be_v make_v out_o of_o the_o son_n in_o vain_a those_o gentleman_n struggle_v to_o reduce_v what_o be_v say_v of_o he_o to_o their_o poor_a way_n of_o explain_v how_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n since_o none_o of_o their_o explication_n can_v amount_v to_o any_o part_n of_o this_o one_a then_o to_o prove_v his_o pre-existence_n that_o be_v that_o he_o have_v a_o be_v before_o he_o be_v conceive_v of_o the_o virgin_n read_v joh._n 6.62_o what_o and_o if_o you_o shall_v see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n ascend_v up_o where_o he_o be_v before_o the_o design_n of_o the_o whole_a chapter_n be_v to_o convince_v the_o jew_n that_o they_o ought_v to_o receive_v he_o the_o argument_n he_o use_v be_v that_o he_o be_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n he_o tell_v they_o that_o he_o be_v the_o food_n of_o their_o soul_n that_o their_o father_n indeed_o have_v meat_n send_v from_o above_o but_o that_o it_o can_v not_o keep_v they_o from_o death_n but_o that_o he_o bring_v they_o bread_n of_o so_o great_a a_o virtue_n that_o it_o will_v procure_v immortality_n that_o this_o bread_n be_v his_o flesh_n which_o he_o give_v for_o the_o life_n of_o the_o world_n his_o hearer_n be_v scandalise_v at_o this_o the_o discontent_n affect_v even_o his_o disciple_n till_o jesus_n to_o convince_v they_o that_o he_o come_v from_o heaven_n tell_v they_o positive_o that_o he_o be_v there_o before_o and_o that_o as_o a_o proof_n of_o this_o they_o shall_v see_v he_o ascend_v thither_o again_o there_o be_v not_o nor_o can_v be_v a_o more_o easy_a way_n of_o argue_v you_o doubt_v whether_o i_o come_v from_o heaven_n to_o feed_v and_o preserve_v to_o save_v and_o redeem_v you_o what_o great_a proof_n of_o this_o can_v you_o desire_v then_o to_o see_v i_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n where_o i_o be_v before_o and_o from_o whence_o i_o descend_v if_o christ_n then_o be_v actual_o in_o heaven_n before_o he_o be_v bear_v these_o two_o truth_n can_v be_v deny_v one_a that_o he_o have_v another_o nature_n beside_o the_o human_a since_o he_o have_v another_o existence_n 2_o that_o he_o must_v have_v exi_v before_o the_o time_n assign_v by_o these_o gentleman_n to_o be_v the_o first_o of_o his_o existence_n that_o be_v his_o conception_n in_o the_o virgin_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o before_o he_o be_v bear_v how_o can_v he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n if_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o heaven_n how_o do_v he_o offer_v they_o to_o let_v they_o see_v he_o ascend_v thither_o again_o the_o apostle_n take_v this_o for_o grant_v eph._n 4.9_o he_o prove_v by_o christ_n ascend_v to_o heaven_n that_o he_o descend_v from_o thence_o whether_o he_o allude_v or_o no_o to_o this_o place_n be_v uncertain_a but_o he_o look_v upon_o christ_n be_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o have_v be_v actual_o there_o as_o a_o principle_n agree_v on_o by_o all_o men._n how_o that_o he_o ascend_v what_o be_v it_o but_o he_o also_o descend_v first_o and_o v._o 10._o he_o that_o descend_v be_v the_o same_o also_o that_o ascend_v far_o above_o all_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n he_o then_o who_o ascend_v from_o we_o to_o heaven_n do_v first_o descend_v from_o heaven_n to_o we_o joh._n 6.33_o the_o bread_n of_o god_n be_v he_o which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n joh._n 3.31_o he_o that_o come_v from_o above_o be_v above_o all_o ..._o he_o that_o come_v from_o heaven_n be_v above_o all_o joh._n 16.27_o i_o come_v forth_o from_o the_o father_n and_o be_o come_v into_o the_o world_n again_o i_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o go_v to_o the_o father_n this_o doctrine_n be_v not_o only_o of_o the_o scripture_n but_o it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o notice_n of_o christianity_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o sect_n or_o denomination_n of_o christian_n but_o believe_v that_o heaven_n be_v the_o place_n from_o whence_o their_o redeemer_n be_v come_v a_o notion_n so_o plain_a so_o easy_a so_o consistent_a with_o the_o whole_a revelation_n of_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o photinus_n bishop_n of_o syrmium_fw-la the_o socinus_n of_o his_o age_n be_v not_o only_o condemn_v by_o several_a council_n but_o anathematise_v also_o by_o the_o several_a persuasion_n of_o christian_n and_o even_o by_o the_o arrian_n and_o semi-arrians_a themselves_o what_o these_o gentleman_n oppose_v consist_v in_o this_o the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n say_v pag._n 25._o that_o christ_n be_v actual_o take_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o take_v his_o instruction_n from_o the_o father_n before_o he_o enter_v upon_o his_o prophetical_a office_n that_o this_o be_v intimate_v by_o the_o very_a place_n which_o we_o have_v examine_v by_o joh._n 8.38_o but_o particular_o by_o joh._n 3.13_o no_o man_n have_v ascend_v to_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o be_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n even_o the_o son_n of_o man_n who_o be_v in_o heaven_n that_o the_o word_n be_v must_v be_v read_v be_v that_o erasmus_n beza_n camerarius_fw-la read_v it_o thus_o that_o the_o evangelist_n have_v not_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n of_o this_o assumption_n because_o it_o be_v before_o their_o be_v call_v to_o be_v his_o disciple_n that_o christ_n never_o tell_v they_o of_o it_o but_o only_o hint_v it_o in_o some_o discourse_n the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 27.28_o cites_n the_o same_o author_n for_o the_o word_n be_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o must_v orthodox_n interpreter_n understand_v it_o metaphorical_o but_o that_o the_o socinian_o understand_v this_o text_n literal_o and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v here_o intimate_v that_o before_o our_o lord_n enter_v upon_o his_o office_n of_o messiah_n he_o be_v take_v up_o to_o heaven_n to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n as_o moses_n be_v into_o the_o mount_n exod._n 24.1_o and_o foll_v and_o from_o thence_o descend_v to_o execute_v his_o office_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v also_o hint_v joh._n 6.38_o joh._n 8.40_o when_o i_o see_v such_o answer_n to_o a_o place_n of_o that_o importance_n so_o express_a and_o so_o positive_a and_o from_o person_n of_o so_o much_o learning_n i_o ask_v myself_o whether_o i_o dream_v or_o be_o real_o awake_a i_o be_o tempt_v to_o lose_v all_o the_o respect_n which_o i_o have_v for_o they_o and_o begin_v to_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o reason_n and_o conscience_n but_o obstinacy_n which_o make_v socinian_n one_a the_o author_n before_o cite_v do_v not_o say_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v read_v be_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v read_v thus_o qui_fw-la est_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la say_v beza_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d vel_fw-la qui_fw-la erat_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la beza_n in_o joh._n 3.13_o these_o great_a critic_n be_v not_o sensible_a that_o the_o be_v be_v as_o much_o for_o we_o as_o the_o be_v i_o hope_v they_o have_v read_v the_o advice_n of_o this_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o note_n on_o this_o very_a verse_n have_v discourse_v of_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n he_o conclude_v in_o these_o word_n i_o think_v fit_a to_o make_v these_o short_a remark_n against_o a_o sort_n of_o man_n who_o be_v not_o ashamed_a in_o this_o our_o age_n to_o fetch_v back_o from_o hell_n the_o detestable_a error_n of_o nestorius_n and_o eutyches_n oppose_v by_o the_o vast_a labour_n and_o study_n of_o all_o the_o father_n and_o condemn_v with_o the_o clear_a and_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 2_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o most_o learned_a interpreter_n have_v understand_v it_o in_o a_o metaphorical_a sense_n this_o be_v another_o of_o those_o have_v boundless_a citation_n a_o metaphorical_a sense_n of_o these_o word_n be_v ridiculous_a impertinent_a and_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o thing_n itself_o they_o see_v
contrary_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o place_n where_o the_o gospel_n be_v write_v but_o not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o occasion_n of_o st._n john_n writing_n it_o the_o testimony_n of_o origen_n be_v resolve_v into_o that_o of_o eusebius_n who_o report_v it_o and_o that_o of_o eusebius_n himself_o be_v nothing_o against_o st._n jerom_n since_o the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n own_v that_o the_o same_o eusebius_n relate_v this_o writing_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n john_n to_o assert_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o institution_n of_o clem._n alex._n who_o be_v in_o the_o right_a then_o the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n who_o say_v that_o st._n jerom_n cite_v a_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o he_o never_o see_v or_o st._n jerom_n who_o by_o the_o author_n be_v own_o confession_n have_v take_v these_o word_n out_o of_o clemens_n preserve_v by_o eusebius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n the_o case_n be_v very_o plain_a the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o milbourn_n be_v mistake_v but_o then_o he_o must_v fall_v foul_a upon_o clemens_n alexand._n a_o ancient_a writer_n and_o a_o learned_a man._n he_o make_v photius_n upon_o who_o character_n of_o man_n no_o critic_n ever_o rely_v to_o give_v he_o a_o very_a ill_a one_o not_o observe_v that_o eusebius_n accuse_v he_o of_o neither_o impiety_n nor_o error_n and_o that_o clemens_n alex._n have_v say_v nothing_o in_o this_o but_o what_o most_o of_o the_o father_n have_v say_v not_o indeed_o as_o to_o the_o particular_a matter_n of_o fact_n of_o st._n john_n being_n desire_v to_o write_v but_o as_o to_o the_o other_o that_o the_o design_n and_o principal_a part_n of_o his_o gospel_n be_v to_o assert_v the_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v it_o not_o on_o this_o that_o st._n cyprian_n lactantius_n tertullian_n gregory_n the_o nazianzene_n st._n chrysostom_n basil_n the_o great_a have_v insist_v be_v not_o this_o very_a chapter_n admire_v both_o by_o christian_n and_o heathen_n be_v it_o not_o the_o hammer_n of_o arrianism_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a as_o afterward_o of_o nestorianism_n of_o eutychianism_n and_o of_o all_o the_o unhappy_a sect_n which_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o can_v be_v say_v the_o answerer_n pag._n 22._o the_o gospel_n itself_o will_v best_o decide_v the_o question_n if_o st._n john_n have_v more_o overthrow_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n than_o confirm_v it_o then_o certain_o he_o have_v not_o write_v this_o gospel_n to_o assert_v it_o right_n but_o how_o will_v this_o be_v prove_v he_o think_v that_o it_o will_v easy_o be_v do_v by_o show_v out_o of_o this_o gospel_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o messenger_n of_o god_n that_o the_o father_n teach_v he_o and_o command_v he_o joh._n 17.1_o 2_o 3._o joh._n 12.49_o and_o 14.10_o etc._n etc._n this_o i_o confess_v prove_v the_o humanity_n but_o how_o do_v it_o destroy_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n how_o be_v it_o against_o the_o design_n of_o st._n john_n to_o delineate_v he_o true_o god_n because_o he_o have_v represent_v he_o true_o man_n he_o be_v not_o god_n because_o he_o be_v man_n be_v a_o ill_a way_n of_o argue_v the_o arrian_n themselves_o be_v too_o sharp_a to_o fetch_v their_o argument_n against_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o saviour_n from_o his_o humanity_n prove_v he_o only_o a_o man_n a_o mere_a man_n without_o any_o other_o nature_n or_o else_o all_o this_o reason_n be_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n but_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o accusation_n lay_v on_o st._n jerom_n st._n john_n have_v show_v in_o his_o gospel_n the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n therefore_o st._n jerom_n be_v in_o the_o wrong_n to_o assure_v that_o he_o be_v entreat_v by_o the_o asian_a bishop_n to_o speak_v more_o express_o to_o his_o divinity_n this_o be_v at_o best_a a_o sort_n of_o a_o very_a slender_a consequence_n thus_o it_o be_v sir_n that_o the_o socinian_o be_v baffle_v by_o false_a and_o senseless_a translation_n support_v by_o fiction_n and_o legend_n exclaim_v this_o author_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v thus_o it_o be_v sir_n that_o the_o socinian_o be_v mistake_v their_o zeal_n for_o their_o opinion_n transport_v they_o too_o far_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o two_o eminent_a father_n be_v abuse_v who_o be_v the_o admiration_n of_o their_o age_n and_o the_o veneration_n of_o we_o the_o truth_n be_v this_o chapter_n pinch_v so_o hard_a that_o these_o gentleman_n be_v always_o uneasy_a at_o its_o least_o approach_n they_o have_v do_v all_o that_o man_n can_v do_v to_o make_v it_o ineffectual_a have_v leave_v nothing_o unattempted_a no_o turn_n of_o wit_n no_o strain_n of_o fancy_n no_o observation_n no_o criticism_n no_o shift_n no_o evasion_n but_o all_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o truth_n be_v great_a and_o irresistible_a it_o be_v plain_a and_o evident_a it_o come_v from_o god_n and_o easy_o overcome_v all_o the_o opposition_n man_n make_v against_o it_o joh._n 1.1_o and_o foll_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n that_o this_o be_v speak_v of_o christ_n and_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o word_n be_v agree_v of_o all_o hand_n the_o first_o assertion_n then_o of_o the_o evangelist_n be_v that_o christ_n be_v before_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o exist_v before_o they_o have_v a_o beginning_n there_o be_v a_o great_a emphasis_n in_o the_o word_n be_v which_o do_v not_o express_v here_o a_o create_v a_o dependent_a be_v but_o a_o superior_a a_o eternal_a and_o divine_a nature_n thus_o jehovah_n render_v by_o the_o greek_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v give_v the_o true_a notion_n of_o god_n and_o thus_o it_o be_v say_v of_o the_o word_n that_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o the_o greek_a father_n explain_v it_o do_v subsist_v in_o a_o most_o eminent_a way_n and_o incommunicable_a to_o a_o creature_n to_o make_v this_o good_a st._n john_n say_v that_o he_o be_v with_o god_n he_o can_v not_o exist_v in_o any_o creature_n whatever_o let_v it_o be_v never_o so_o great_a noble_a or_o perfect_a because_o he_o exist_v before_o any_o thing_n be_v create_v before_o the_o world_n be_v joh._n 17.5_o he_o can_v not_o be_v in_o time_n because_o no_o time_n be_v yet_o when_o he_o be_v therefore_o he_o be_v in_o god_n and_o with_o god_n from_o everlasting_a who_o before_o all_o age_n say_v the_o great_a ignatius_n a_o man_n of_o the_o apostolic_a time_n epist_n ad_fw-la magnes_fw-la be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o last_o time_n the_o unchangeable_a word_n say_v st._n austin_n epis_n 49._o quest_n 2._o reside_v unchangeable_o with_o the_o unchangeable_a father_n from_o thence_o the_o greek_a father_n understand_v the_o admirable_a description_n of_o wisdom_n to_o be_v of_o no_o other_o than_o the_o eternal_a word_n the_o son_n of_o god_n prov._n 8.22_o and_o those_o expression_n i_o be_v set_v up_o from_o everlasting_a from_o the_o beginning_n or_o ever_o the_o earth_n be_v before_o his_o work_n of_o old_a when_o there_o be_v no_o depth_n i_o be_v bring_v forth_o i_o be_v by_o he_o i_o be_v by_o his_o side_n say_v the_o chaldee_n interpreter_n all_o these_o expression_n they_o understand_v to_o be_v no_o other_o than_o this_o and_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n this_o be_v so_o plain_a that_o i_o can_v but_o wonder_v at_o the_o stir_v these_o gentleman_n make_v about_o the_o word_n inexistence_n eternal_a generation_n personality_n as_o if_o they_o be_v hard_a and_o unknown_a term_n the_o result_n of_o man_n fancy_n and_o a_o jargon_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o call_v they_o the_o word_n or_o the_o son_n for_o they_o own_o these_o word_n to_o be_v synonymous_n in_o scripture_n be_v say_v to_o be_v from_o ever_o with_o god_n therefore_o he_o exist_v in_o god_n and_o i_o think_v this_o be_v inexistence_n a_o father_n and_o a_o son_n natural_o and_o of_o necessity_n suppose_v a_o generation_n or_o else_o they_o can_v be_v neither_o father_n nor_o son_n this_o be_v generation_n the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n be_v both_o eternal_a therefore_o the_o generation_n must_v be_v so_o too_o but_o the_o father_n be_v not_o the_o son_n nor_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o father_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o foundation_n for_o personality_n the_o evangelist_n proceed_v and_o lay_v this_o 3d_o axiom_n declare_v the_o divinity_n as_o he_o have_v do_v before_o the_o eternity_n of_o the_o word_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n what_o can_v be_v more_o express_a or_o positive_a what_o consequence_n can_v be_v more_o natural_a the_o word_n be_v in_o the_o beginning_n or_o ever_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o world_n be_v he_o be_v with_o god_n and_o exi_v in_o he_o therefore_o he_o must_v be_v
god_n and_o the_o word_n be_v god_n but_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v one_o and_o incapable_a of_o division_n it_o can_v be_v multiply_v without_o destruction_n therefore_o if_o the_o father_n be_v god_n as_o it_o be_v confess_v of_o all_o hand_n and_o if_o the_o word_n be_v god_n as_o the_o evangelist_n full_o and_o plain_o assert_v it_o there_o must_v be_v more_o than_o one_o person_n in_o that_o one_o single_a and_o indivisible_a deity_n these_o person_n must_v be_v coeval_a coeternal_a consubstantial_a this_o show_v how_o mean_a and_o low_a how_o strange_a and_o far_o from_o the_o question_n be_v the_o answer_n or_o rather_o the_o subterfuge_n of_o these_o gentleman_n which_o they_o be_v never_o weary_a of_o obtrude_a that_o christ_n be_v call_v god_n as_o moses_n and_o solomon_n be_v and_z as_o magistrate_n and_o prince_n i_o beg_v the_o favour_n if_o we_o do_v nothing_o but_o catch_v at_o the_o word_n god_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o say_v we_o do_v to_o show_v i_o in_o the_o sacred_a write_n some_o such_o place_n as_o this_o for_o solomon_n and_o moses_n do_v any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n or_o prophet_n say_v in_o the_o beginning_n be_v moses_n and_o moses_n be_v with_o god_n and_o moses_n be_v god_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v solomon_n and_o solomon_n be_v with_o god_n and_o solomon_n be_v god_n they_o can_v but_o be_v sensible_a how_o such_o reason_v may_v be_v expose_v but_o though_o what_o st._n john_n have_v say_v be_v enough_o to_o prevent_v all_o objection_n against_o the_o sacred_a doctrine_n and_o leave_v no_o room_n for_o arrianism_n sabellianism_n and_o socinianism_n yet_o he_o prosecute_v the_o argument_n and_o give_v we_o sensible_a proof_n of_o his_o divinity_n who_o he_o assert_v so_o positive_o to_o be_v god_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n a_o repetition_n of_o great_a weight_n which_o unite_v all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v before_o to_o what_o be_v to_o be_v say_v after_o the_o word_n who_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n the_o word_n who_o be_v with_o god_n the_o word_n who_o be_v god_n be_v the_o same_o who_o make_v all_o thing_n v._o 3._o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v of_o all_o spiritual_a and_o material_a substance_n and_o in_o a_o word_n of_o all_o that_o be_v be_v a_o most_o sensible_a and_o convince_a argument_n of_o a_o deity_n a_o work_n so_o transcend_v all_o finite_a capacity_n that_o the_o true_a god_n be_v distinguish_v by_o this_o from_o they_o who_o pretend_v to_o be_v but_o be_v real_o no_o go_n isay_n 45.12_o 18._o the_o assertion_n of_o heb._n 3.4_o be_v true_a both_o in_o divinity_n and_o philosophy_n he_o that_o build_v all_o thing_n be_v god_n none_o but_o the_o supreme_a god_n can_v do_v it_o now_o in_o what_o more_o literal_a and_o accurate_a way_n of_o expression_n than_o this_o can_v this_o create_a power_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o word_n one_a you_o have_v a_o affirmation_n of_o as_o great_a a_o extent_n as_o the_o whole_a world_n itself_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o he_o 2_o even_o to_o prevent_v the_o least_o imagination_n that_o perhaps_o something_o be_v which_o may_v have_v another_o author_n and_o be_v the_o emanation_n of_o some_o other_o be_v there_o be_v the_o most_o pregnant_a positive_a and_o particular_a negation_n that_o can_v be_v and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v how_o long_o shall_v man_n give_v the_o lie_n to_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o so_o far_o espouse_v a_o opinion_n as_o to_o contradict_v the_o clear_a truth_n he_o that_o make_v all_o thing_n be_v true_o god_n therefore_o since_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o christ_n make_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o nothing_o be_v make_v without_o he_o he_o be_v true_o and_o real_o god_n v._o 4_o 5._o st._n john_n say_v in_o he_o be_v life_n and_o the_o life_n be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n to_o live_v be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o most_o high_a for_o whereas_o all_o other_o being_n borrow_v their_o life_n from_o he_o he_o live_v independent_o from_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n he_o be_v call_v eminent_o the_o live_v god_n christ_n then_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o life_n and_o of_o light_n whatsoever_o live_v life_n by_o he_o he_o be_v original_a life_n in_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n because_o by_o he_o man_n be_v make_v gen._n 1.26_o he_o be_v true_o life_n in_o the_o order_n of_o grace_n joh._n 14.6_o i_o be_o the_o life_n he_o be_v our_o life_n even_o when_o we_o be_v dead_a joh._n 11.25_o i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n he_o be_v our_o life_n in_o the_o order_n of_o glory_n 2_o joh._n 5.20_o the_o true_a god_n and_o eternal_a life_n a_o place_n we_o shall_v examine_v further_o v._o 6_o 7._o the_o evangelist_n add_v that_o the_o great_a among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n the_o other_z john_n matt._n 11.11_o be_v send_v by_o god_n to_o bear_v witness_n that_o he_o be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o for_o fear_v man_n shall_v be_v apt_a to_o mistake_v this_o messenger_n of_o god_n for_o the_o god_n himself_o who_o messenger_n he_o be_v have_v so_o many_o qualification_n above_o other_o man_n he_o tell_v we_o v._o 8._o that_o john_n be_v not_o that_o light_n but_o v._o 9_o that_o the_o word_n of_o who_o he_o have_v make_v such_o a_o admirable_a description_n be_v that_o true_a light_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o original_n that_o essential_a light_n that_o be_v to_o come_v which_o have_v no_o beginning_n suffer_v no_o decay_n and_o diffuse_v itself_o so_o as_o in_o some_o measure_n or_o other_o to_o enlighten_v every_o man._n v._o 10._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o make_v himself_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n he_o repeat_v again_o that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o to_o show_v the_o blindness_n and_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o world_n he_o say_v that_o though_o he_o be_v the_o maker_n and_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n yet_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o he_o aggravate_v this_o v._o 10._o he_o come_v into_o his_o own_o among_o those_o very_a man_n who_o he_o have_v make_v who_o be_v he_o by_o a_o must_v undoubted_a title_n even_o that_o of_o creation_n and_o yet_o his_o own_o receive_v he_o not_o refuse_v the_o adoration_n and_o obedince_n due_a to_o he_o v._o 12._o to_o such_o as_o receive_v he_o even_o to_o they_o that_o believe_v in_o his_o name_n give_v he_o power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o who_o be_v the_o eternal_a son_n by_o nature_n assume_v they_o to_o the_o dignity_n of_o son_n by_o adoption_n from_o all_o that_o the_o evangelist_n have_v say_v the_o eternity_n and_o divinity_n of_o the_o word_n be_v clear_a that_o he_o be_v the_o supreme_a god_n the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o universal_a and_o only_a good_a of_o man_n be_v plain_a and_o evident_a all_o the_o difficulty_n be_v how_o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n come_v into_o the_o world_n be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o who_o be_v to_o come_v to_o appear_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o world_n the_o title_n give_v he_o both_o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n this_o the_o evangelist_n resolve_v v._o 14._o and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o dwell_v among_o we_o and_o we_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o glory_n as_o of_o the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n these_o gentleman_n who_o ask_v we_o with_o so_o much_o earnestness_n to_o show_v they_o in_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n godman_n and_o incarnation_n may_v easy_o satisfy_v themselves_o here_o the_o word_n who_o be_v in_o the_o beginning_n before_o the_o world_n be_v who_o be_v with_o god_n who_o be_v god_n who_o have_v make_v all_o thing_n the_o word_n who_o be_v the_o true_a light_n the_o original_a life_n of_o all_o that_o be_v who_o be_v announce_v by_o the_o prophet_n ever_o since_o the_o world_n begin_v who_o have_v for_o his_o messenger_n the_o great_a among_o the_o son_n of_o man_n who_o be_v full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n and_o of_o who_o fullness_n we_o have_v all_o receive_v that_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n assume_v our_o nature_n and_o become_v man._n i_o will_v end_v the_o explication_n of_o this_o place_n by_o these_o two_o remark_n one_a st._n john_n say_v he_o dwell_v the_o original_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o tabernacle_v among_o we_o a_o plain_a allusion_n to_o the_o tabernacle_n to_o which_o god_n be_v please_v to_o be_v present_a or_o according_a to_o the_o hebrew_n to_o inhabit_v in_o this_o sense_n the_o new_a jerusalem_n be_v call_v rev._n 1.3_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n with_o
so_o because_o they_o can_v tell_v how_o ans_fw-fr to_o dr._n wallis_n by_o his_o friend_n pag._n 11._o one_a for_o the_o criticism_n it_o be_v a_o know_a maxim_n among_o the_o jew_n say_v the_o author_n that_o the_o world_n be_v make_v for_o the_o messiah_n and_o that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v make_v the_o new_a world_n speak_v of_o in_o scripture_n by_o the_o new_a heaven_n and_o the_o new_a earth_n that_o be_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o spiritual_a world_n grant_v all_o this_o what_o be_v it_o to_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o old_a world_n be_v a_o strange_a way_n of_o reason_v if_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a to_o be_v creator_n of_o both_o it_o will_v do_v they_o some_o service_n the_o world_n be_v make_v for_o the_o messiah_n therefore_o not_o by_o the_o messiah_n be_v another_o wild_a consequence_n since_o the_o world_n may_v be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o also_o for_o he_o that_o be_v for_o his_o honour_n and_o exaltation_n among_o man_n as_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v by_o god_n and_o for_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n and_o the_o end_n of_o all_o thing_n these_o gentleman_n own_o that_o the_o messiah_n be_v know_v to_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n but_o they_o say_v it_o be_v not_o certain_a why_o they_o give_v he_o that_o name_n this_o will_v appear_v a_o vast_a mistake_n to_o any_o one_o who_o be_v never_o so_o little_o acquaint_v with_o their_o write_n it_o be_v not_o my_o design_n to_o stuff_v these_o paper_n with_o jewish_a citation_n it_o shall_v be_v do_v if_o require_v but_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o they_o understand_v the_o messiah_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o son_n to_o be_v the_o word_n the_o famous_a philo_n in_o his_o book_n of_o quest_n and_o solut._n make_v the_o deity_n to_o consist_v first_o of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o all_o thing_n 2_o of_o the_o other_o person_n or_o god_n who_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n of_o the_o father_n he_o call_v he_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr agricul_fw-la the_o word_n proceed_v from_o god_n his_o first_o beget_v son_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr flamm_n glad_a the_o word_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n by_o who_o the_o world_n have_v be_v create_v expression_n derive_v from_o the_o old_a paraphrast_n and_o commentator_n thus_o jonathan_n render_v isay_n 45.12_o i_o make_v the_o earth_n and_o create_a man_n upon_o it_o i_o by_o my_o word_n make_v the_o earth_n and_o create_a man_n upon_o it_o gen._n 3.8_o and_o they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n be_v explain_v by_o the_o chaldee_n paraphra_v and_o they_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n god_n gen._n 1.27_o and_o god_n create_v man_n in_o his_o own_o image_n the_o interpreter_n read_v and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n create_v man_n these_o paraphrase_n be_v the_o public_a interpretation_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o this_o doctrine_n so_o constant_a among_o they_o and_o particular_o among_o the_o hellenist_n that_o in_o the_o 2d_o book_n of_o origen_n contr_n cles_n the_o jew_n in_o who_o person_n celsus_n dispute_v own_v free_o that_o the_o word_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n this_o author_n than_o have_v neither_o understand_v nor_o apply_v as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v the_o rule_n which_o he_o have_v lay_v down_o that_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v a_o particular_a regard_n to_o the_o opinion_n and_o notion_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n and_o nothing_o be_v more_o visible_a than_o this_o that_o st._n john_n to_o prove_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o natural_a world_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o eternal_a be_v with_o the_o father_n have_v bring_v he_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n to_o who_o by_o the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o after_o they_o of_o the_o father_n the_o creation_n of_o the_o natural_a world_n be_v attribute_v this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o key_n to_o let_v we_o into_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n they_o have_v another_o and_o that_o be_v that_o poor_a distinction_n between_o the_o god_n by_o nature_n and_o a_o god_n by_o deputation_n that_o the_o true_a god_n be_v the_o one_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o other_o that_o to_o find_v out_o the_o god_n by_o nature_n from_o the_o god_n by_o deputation_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o one_o be_v always_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o god_n the_o other_o only_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o god_n that_o the_o very_a text_n in_o dispute_n show_v it_o where_o the_o word_n be_v god_n be_v simple_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o a_o article_n and_o where_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n who_o certain_o there_o be_v the_o supreme_a god_n be_v with_o a_o article_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o god_n true_o sir_n the_o first_o key_n be_v worth_a little_a but_o this_o be_v worth_a much_o less_o shall_v i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o offer_v a_o poor_a criticism_n i_o will_v say_v that_o if_o any_o one_o look_n serious_o into_o the_o sacred_a writing_n he_o will_v find_v that_o there_o be_v no_o care_n at_o all_o of_o observe_v article_n and_o that_o of_o this_o innumerable_a instance_n may_v be_v produce_v this_o distinction_n have_v be_v borrow_a from_o the_o arrian_n confute_v and_o laugh_v out_o of_o door_n by_o the_o father_n and_o be_v a_o poor_a mean_a miserable_a shift_n without_o the_o least_o solidity_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v overthrow_v to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n in_o this_o very_a chapter_n v._o 12._o he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o become_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o a_o article_n v._o 7._o there_o be_v a_o man_n send_v from_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o a_o article_n and_o yet_o both_o these_o undoubted_o speak_v of_o almighty_a god_n v._o 18._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n be_v without_o a_o article_n not_o to_o multiply_v instance_n of_o this_o without_o end_n nothing_o show_v more_o evident_o the_o poverty_n and_o deficiency_n of_o this_o criticism_n that_o the_o god_n by_o nature_n be_v always_o express_v with_o and_o the_o false_a god_n or_o the_o god_n by_o deputation_n without_o a_o article_n than_o that_o gal._n 4.8_o 9_o where_o the_o true_a god_n be_v design_o oppose_v to_o the_o false_a he_o be_v simple_o call_v god_n without_o a_o article_n howbeit_o then_o when_o you_o know_v not_o god_n you_o do_v service_n to_o they_o who_o by_o nature_n be_v no_o god_n but_o now_o that_o you_o have_v know_v god_n or_o rather_o be_v know_v of_o god_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v without_o a_o article_n nay_o rom._n 1.1_o 4._o even_n when_o god_n be_v oppose_v to_o christ_n who_o they_o make_v a_o god_n by_o office_n he_o be_v then_o call_v god_n without_o any_o article_n at_o all_o the_o criticism_n of_o the_o particle_n by_o which_o shall_v have_v be_v render_v for_o be_v as_o bad_a as_o this_o i_o will_v beg_v this_o author_n to_o produce_v any_o one_o translation_n extant_a at_o this_o day_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v not_o render_v by_o he_o or_o any_o before_o socinus_n who_o ever_o dream_v of_o a_o gospel_n state_n or_o a_o spiritual_a creation_n out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o st._n john_n i_o will_v pray_v he_o to_o reconcile_v this_o particle_n for_o with_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o this_o v._o and_o without_o he_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n make_v that_o be_v make_v and_o with_o v._o 10._o he_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n be_v make_v by_o he_o and_o the_o world_n know_v he_o not_o it_o be_v another_o miserable_a shift_n that_o the_o new_a creation_n the_o spiritual_a world_n the_o world_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v thing_n universal_o know_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n convert_v by_o they_o since_o it_o be_v undeniable_a that_o the_o jew_n understand_v no_o creation_n wrought_v by_o the_o word_n but_o the_o natural_a nor_o the_o primitive_a father_n ever_o explain_v these_o word_n of_o any_o other_o it_o be_v strange_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v so_o clear_a to_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o the_o father_n and_o yet_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o find_v so_o much_o as_o the_o footstep_n of_o this_o spiritual_a and_o a_o constant_a assertion_n of_o the_o natural_a creation_n by_o the_o word_n this_o author_n be_v so_o sensible_a of_o this_o that_o he_o do_v not_o know_v where_o to_o fix_v the_o belove_a criticism_n if_o you_o speak_v say_v he_o of_o the_o natural_a world_n it_o must_v be_v render_v
that_o himself_o have_v one_o who_o be_v not_o only_o his_o lord_n but_o his_o god_n he_o cite_v for_o this_o joh._n 20.17_o i_o ascend_v to_o my_o father_n and_o your_o father_n to_o my_o god_n and_o your_o god_n this_o be_v a_o bad_a reason_n and_o a_o text_n misunderstand_v to_o support_v it_o the_o reason_n be_v bad_a for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o lord_n over_o he_o he_o be_v not_o the_o lord_n of_o lord_n god_n be_v call_v in_o scripture_n the_o god_n of_o god_n and_o the_o assertion_n can_v not_o be_v true_a if_o there_o be_v a_o god_n above_o he_o natural_a reason_n will_v teach_v any_o man_n that_o none_o can_v be_v lord_n of_o lord_n but_o in_o a_o unlimited_a sense_n any_o other_o absolute_o destory_n the_o proposition_n he_o have_v misunderstand_v the_o place_n of_o st._n john_n which_o do_v not_o suppose_v any_o superiority_n in_o the_o father_n above_o the_o son_n but_o only_o express_v the_o sameness_n of_o his_o nature_n with_o he_o christ_n show_v how_o god_n be_v his_o father_n and_o how_o we_o his_o by_o nature_n in_o the_o same_o deity_n say_v epiphanius_n she_o 69._o and_o we_o by_o grace_n in_o the_o adoption_n which_o text_n st._n cyrill_a cathech_n 7._o and_o st._n chrysostom_n on_o this_o very_a place_n explain_v after_o this_o manner_n as_o he_o be_v his_o father_n so_o be_v he_o his_o god_n and_o his_o god_n because_o his_o father_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o argument_n of_o christ_n eternity_n by_o joh._n 17.5_o and_o now_o o_o father_n glorify_v thou_o i_o with_o thy_o own_o self_n with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v grotius_n observe_v that_o this_o expression_n before_o the_o world_n be_v be_v the_o common_a notion_n which_o the_o jew_n have_v of_o eternity_n christ_n say_v in_o the_o precede_a v._o that_o he_o have_v glorify_v his_o father_n on_o earth_n this_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v acquire_v to_o god_n consist_v in_o finish_v the_o work_n which_o he_o give_v he_o to_o do_v in_o this_o verse_n he_o beg_v of_o the_o father_n that_o as_o a_o reward_n of_o this_o he_o will_v also_o glorify_v he_o he_o assert_n to_o what_o kind_n of_o honour_n he_o desire_v to_o be_v promote_v even_o that_o which_o he_o have_v with_o he_o before_o the_o world_n be_v he_o have_v then_o a_o eternal_a a_o essential_a glory_n with_o the_o father_n which_o this_o same_o evangelist_n have_v before_o express_v by_o say_v that_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n it_o be_v to_o this_o that_o he_o desire_v his_o bless_a humanity_n to_o be_v raise_v he_o have_v then_o before_o a_o eternal_a existence_n with_o god_n for_o the_o word_n be_v god_n and_o he_o claim_v that_o his_o mortal_a and_o passable_a nature_n my_o be_v assume_v to_o a_o participation_n of_o that_o honour_n dignity_n and_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v from_o all_o eternity_n this_o text_n be_v full_a and_o home_o but_o it_o receive_v a_o great_a addition_n from_o joh._n 12.41_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o isaias_n see_v his_o glory_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o the_o glory_n speak_v of_o here_o be_v that_o of_o the_o eternal_a god_n isay_n 6.1_o 2_o 3._o he_o describe_v not_o only_o his_o throne_n and_o the_o numerous_a attendance_n of_o the_o bless_a spirit_n but_o the_o two_o seraphim_n who_o cover_v their_o face_n with_o their_o wing_n cry_v one_o to_o another_o holy_a holy_a holy_a be_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n a_o name_n which_o none_o but_o the_o true_a god_n assume_v v._o 9_o the_o prophet_n receive_v his_o commission_n in_o the_o word_n repeat_v by_o st._n john_n which_o be_v a_o prophecy_n of_o the_o incredulity_n and_o obstinacy_n of_o the_o jew_n st._n john_n declare_v then_o the_o prophecy_n to_o be_v fulfil_v he_o do_v not_o leave_v we_o to_o conjecture_v of_o who_o the_o prophet_n speak_v but_o tell_v we_o plain_o that_o these_o thing_n say_v isaias_n when_o he_o see_v his_o glory_n and_o speak_v of_o he_o to_o this_o last_o text_n the_o auhor_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n answer_n one_a that_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o orthodox_n interpreter_n both_o father_n and_o modern_a have_v confess_v that_o the_o word_n of_o st._n john_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o christ_n but_o of_o god_n for_o god_n only_o be_v intend_v in_o the_o forego_n verse_n to_o which_o the_o word_n of_o this_o relate_v 2_o that_o the_o best_a greek_a bibles_n read_v not_o his_o glory_n but_o god_n glory_n for_o the_o first_o they_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o observe_v again_o that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o their_o boundless_a citation_n and_o of_o those_o character_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a give_v at_o random_n as_o this_o very_a author_n brief_n hist_o pag._n 11._o have_v honour_v dyonisius_n petavius_n with_o the_o title_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o another_o of_o these_o gentleman_n call_v he_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o most_o learned_a order_n contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n that_o his_o own_o society_n have_v of_o the_o one_o though_o otherwise_o a_o man_n of_o great_a worth_n and_o to_o the_o opinion_n which_o the_o learned_a world_n have_v of_o the_o rest_n the_o reason_n which_o they_o give_v that_o god_n be_v only_o intend_v in_o the_o forego_n verse_n be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o question_n the_o difficulty_n be_v not_o neither_o whether_o isaias_n speak_v of_o christ_n but_o whether_o it_o be_v of_o he_o that_o st._n john_n say_v that_o isaias_n speak_v and_o indeed_o he_o must_v be_v wilful_o blind_a who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o all_o this_o be_v say_v of_o he_o who_o depart_v from_o they_o v._o 36._o in_o who_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v v._o 37._o of_o who_o all_o this_o be_v prophesy_v v._o 38_o 40._o even_a christ_n for_o the_o second_o that_o the_o best_a greek_a bibles_n read_v god_n and_o not_o his_o it_o be_v a_o great_a misfortune_n that_o so_o few_o people_n can_v see_v those_o best_a bibles_n or_o read_v the_o most_o learned_a of_o the_o interpreter_n and_o that_o all_o the_o ancient_a copy_n that_o i_o know_v extant_a and_o all_o the_o print_a edition_n read_v unanimous_o he_o and_o not_o god_n but_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o text_n which_o occassion_v this_o be_v much_o worse_o to_o joh._n 17.5_o he_o say_v that_o the_o glory_n which_o christ_n say_v he_o have_v before_o the_o world_n be_v be_v only_o mean_v in_o god_n decree_n he_o add_v pag._n 31._o but_o without_o cite_v where_o that_o st._n austin_n and_o several_a learned_a interpreter_n not_o only_o grant_v but_o contend_v that_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o precede_v his_o glory_n 1_o pet._n 1.11_o that_o this_o text_n ought_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o 2_o cor._n 5.1_o we_o have_v a_o build_n of_o god_n a_o house_n make_v with_o hand_n and_o 2_o tim._n 1.9_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n before_o the_o world_n begin_v this_o be_v little_a to_o the_o purpose_n it_o have_v be_v observe_v already_o that_o st._n austin_n aquinas_n and_o both_o the_o disciple_n of_o these_o two_o great_a man_n understand_v these_o word_n of_o a_o decree_n which_o i_o wonder_v these_o gentleman_n offer_v so_o much_o as_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o suppose_v what_o they_o so_o earnest_o deny_v and_o that_o be_v the_o personal_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o jesus_n christ_n read_v the_o book_n de_fw-fr nat_n and_o grat._n de_fw-fr praedest_fw-la de_fw-fr persev_n sanct._n tract_n in_o johan_n and_o almost_o every_o where_o and_o you_o will_v find_v it_o to_o be_v the_o system_fw-la of_o these_o two_o doctor_n to_o which_o they_o reduce_v not_o only_o this_o place_n but_o all_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n and_o indeed_o if_o you_o admit_v of_o a_o decree_n you_o must_v go_v through_o with_o this_o as_o these_o two_o learned_a man_n have_v do_v there_o be_v no_o other_o in_o relation_n to_o christ_n can_v have_v any_o room_n in_o the_o scripture_n what_o be_v more_o be_v only_o pretend_v to_o elude_v the_o force_n of_o a_o argument_n be_v these_o gentleman_n unconcern_v in_o the_o dispute_n and_o shall_v they_o hear_v this_o text_n cite_v glorify_v thou_o i_o ..._o with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o before_o the_o world_n be_v how_o will_v it_o make_v they_o merry_a to_o hear_v a_o decree_n pretend_v for_o that_o which_o can_v be_v conceive_v but_o antecedent_n to_o that_o decree_n have_v christ_n say_v glorify_v i_o with_o the_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v appoint_v or_o decree_v for_o i_o it_o may_v have_v serve_v but_o glorify_v i_o with_o the_o glory_n which_o i_o have_v with_o thou_o which_o be_v i_o which_o i_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o before_o the_o creation_n exclude_v any_o thing_n of_o
divinity_n of_o christ_n be_v party_n in_o the_o case_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n and_o so_o not_o to_o be_v hear_v but_o in_o this_o it_o be_v visible_a even_o to_o the_o most_o zealous_a socinian_n that_o he_o have_v gross_o and_o shameless_o corrupt_v this_o text._n the_o word_n god_n not_o be_v in_o the_o text_n be_v real_o a_o objection_n but_o if_o true_o consider_v rather_o confirm_v than_o weaken_v the_o assertion_n for_o the_o only_a lord_n can_v no_o more_o be_v restrain_v to_o christ_n exclusive_o to_o the_o father_n than_o the_o only_a true_a god_n can_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o father_n exclusive_o to_o christ_n the_o word_n god_n add_v nothing_o to_o the_o force_n of_o the_o expression_n the_o only_a lord_n be_v a_o phrase_n of_o as_o large_a a_o extent_n and_o as_o full_a a_o importance_n as_o the_o only_a true_a god_n this_o take_v off_o at_o once_o all_o the_o other_o text_n depend_v from_o this_o on_o which_o this_o author_n have_v so_o much_o insist_v 1_o cor_fw-la 8.6_o eph._n 4.4_o 5_o 6._o 1_o tim._n 2.5_o etc._n etc._n a_o second_o objection_n which_o indeed_o this_o author_n have_v not_o make_v though_o he_o have_v scarce_o leave_v a_o text_n untouched_a whether_o it_o make_v for_o his_o purpose_n or_o no_o and_o be_v a_o reason_n or_o only_o look_v like_o one_o but_o be_v make_v by_o the_o author_n of_o some_o thought_n upon_o dr._n sherlock_n vindication_n of_o the_o trininy_o be_v take_v from_o joh._n 10.35_o 36._o if_o he_o call_v they_o god_n unto_o who_o the_o word_n of_o god_n come_v and_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v break_v say_v you_o of_o he_o who_o the_o father_n have_v sanctify_v and_o send_v into_o the_o world_n thou_o blaspheme_v because_o i_o say_v i_o be_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o do_v not_o say_v i_o who_o the_o father_n have_v beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n say_v the_o author_n pag_n 4._o of_o his_o own_o substance_n but_o i_o who_o the_o father_n have_v sanctify_v which_o plain_o show_v that_o when_o he_o say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o he_o be_v only_o so_o in_o a_o sense_n of_o consecration_n and_o of_o mission_n and_o consequent_o that_o his_o unity_n with_o the_o father_n be_v not_o a_o essential_a and_o natural_a unity_n but_o mere_o moral_a and_o relative_a of_o work_n not_o of_o essence_n which_o be_v real_o incommunicable_a pag._n 6._o i_o shall_v think_v this_o passage_n write_v with_o the_o very_a finger_n of_o truth_n to_o be_v unanswerable_a be_v it_o not_o that_o i_o know_v the_o orthodox_n be_v wont_a to_o darken_v the_o most_o bright_a light_n at_o the_o cost_n of_o sincerity_n and_o good_a sense_n and_o make_v no_o scruple_n of_o the_o gross_a contradiction_n and_o absurdity_n so_o they_o may_v but_o cast_a dust_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o simple_a man_n pass_v by_o the_o compliment_n which_o be_v of_o a_o singular_a nature_n and_o a_o barbarous_a aspersion_n on_o person_n who_o they_o themselves_o own_o to_o have_v a_o extraordinary_a piety_n and_o learning_n i_o must_v beg_v leave_n to_o admire_v the_o difference_n of_o man_n perception_n this_o author_n think_v this_o passage_n to_o be_v write_v with_o the_o very_a finger_n of_o truth_n and_o not_o to_o be_v answerable_a i_o think_v so_o too_o but_o he_o say_v against_o the_o eternal_a be_v of_o christ_n and_o i_o see_v for_o it_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o difference_n between_o we_o lie_v here_o he_o fancy_n that_o those_o verse_n be_v a_o explication_n of_o what_o christ_n have_v say_v before_o v._o 30._o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o for_o which_o v._o 31._o the_o jew_n take_v up_o stone_n to_o stone_n he_o and_o which_o v._o 33._o they_o call_v blasphemy_n and_o because_o that_o he_o be_v a_o man_n make_v himself_o god_n and_o that_o to_o avoid_v their_o anger_n he_o declare_v to_o they_o that_o he_o be_v no_o otherwise_o god_n than_o those_o very_a man_n who_o by_o their_o law_n be_v call_v god_n not_o because_o they_o be_v so_o indeed_o but_o because_o they_o have_v the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o god_n communicate_v to_o they_o now_o i_o think_v that_o these_o word_n be_v not_o a_o explication_n excuse_v or_o apology_n for_o what_o he_o have_v say_v i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o but_o a_o open_a and_o free_a continuation_n of_o what_o be_v before_o and_o a_o new_a assertion_n of_o his_o divinity_n this_o will_v appear_v if_o the_o whole_a context_n be_v take_v together_o christ_n have_v say_v v._o 9_o that_o he_o be_v the_o door_n that_o by_o he_o if_o any_o man_n enter_v he_o shall_v be_v save_v agreeable_a to_o this_o expression_n of_o revel_n 7.3_o he_o that_o be_v holy_a he_o that_o be_v true_a ..._o he_o that_o open_v and_o no_o man_n shut_v and_o shut_v and_o no_o man_n open_v v._o 28._o that_o he_o give_v his_o sheep_n eternal_a life_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o wonder_v at_o those_o character_n which_o can_v agree_v to_o no_o creature_n he_o carry_v yet_o the_o point_n high_o he_o tell_v they_o v._o 30._o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o that_o though_o they_o see_v he_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n like_o man_n yet_o he_o be_v god_n with_o his_o father_n and_o partaker_n of_o the_o same_o divine_a nature_n this_o assertion_n to_o man_n who_o heart_n be_v not_o purify_v by_o faith_n seem_v strange_a and_o impious_a v._o 31._o they_o take_v stone_n to_o stone_n he_o he_o tell_v they_o with_o that_o unconcernedness_n which_o truth_n and_o innocence_n give_v that_o he_o have_v do_v among_o they_o many_o miraculous_a work_n to_o prove_v this_o his_o union_n with_o his_o father_n he_o ask_v which_o of_o these_o work_n have_v provoke_v their_o blind_a zeal_n to_o stone_n he_o they_o answer_v he_o v._o 33._o that_o it_o be_v not_o for_o any_o of_o those_o good_a and_o miraculous_a work_n but_o because_o be_v but_o a_o man_n he_o make_v himself_o not_o a._n god_n but_o god_n he_o do_v not_o at_o all_o excuse_n the_o thing_n or_o part_n with_o his_o first_o assertion_n he_o pity_v but_o not_o fear_v their_o malice_n and_o use_v a_o plain_a and_o forcible_a argument_n to_o instruct_v they_o though_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v sacred_a and_o the_o most_o reverend_a appellation_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o your_o law_n say_v christ_n will_v allow_v it_o to_o they_o who_o speak_v to_o you_o from_o he_o if_o it_o be_v so_o then_o and_o you_o can_v deny_v it_o because_o it_o be_v write_v in_o your_o law_n ps_n 82.6_o i_o have_v say_v you_o be_v go_n if_o man_n be_v sometime_o allow_v to_o be_v call_v god_n how_o much_o more_o may_v i_o make_v myself_o god_n and_o this_o without_o the_o least_o danger_n of_o blasphemy_n who_o be_o above_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v create_v to_o who_o every_o knee_n must_v bow_v of_o thing_n in_o heaven_n and_o thing_n in_o the_o earth_n and_o thing_n under_o the_o earth_n who_o the_o father_n have_v sanctify_v not_o only_o by_o a_o peculiar_a designation_n as_o a_o king_n or_o a_o prophet_n but_o by_o a_o eternal_a communication_n of_o his_o nature_n by_o which_o he_o and_o i_o be_v one_o and_o so_o send_v i_o into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v you_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o mankind_n if_o i_o do_v not_o do_v the_o work_n which_o none_o but_o the_o son_n of_o god_n can_v do_v you_o may_v have_v some_o ground_n not_o to_o believe_v i_o but_o as_o long_o as_o i_o do_v these_o miraculous_a work_n it_o be_v to_o you_o a_o sufficient_a argument_n of_o persuasion_n you_o ought_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o v._o 38._o that_o the_o jew_n understand_v this_o answer_n literal_o as_o they_o have_v do_v the_o allegation_n that_o they_o do_v not_o take_v it_o as_o a_o apology_n for_o the_o pretend_a blasphemy_n but_o a_o further_a proof_n of_o his_o be_v one_o with_o the_o father_n appear_v by_o their_o not_o relent_v but_o v._o 39_o therefore_o they_o seek_v again_o to_o take_v he_o but_o be_v escape_v out_o of_o their_o hand_n i_o beg_v leave_v then_o of_o this_o author_n and_o of_o calvin_n who_o he_o have_v cite_v blame_v the_o father_n for_o misapply_v this_o text_n to_o say_v that_o the_o father_n be_v in_o the_o right_n and_o that_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o obvious_a than_o this_o it_o will_v be_v much_o confirm_v if_o we_o consider_v that_o this_o be_v not_o the_o only_a time_n that_o the_o jew_n quarrel_v with_o christ_n upon_o the_o same_o account_n and_o he_o always_o answer_v not_o by_o deny_v but_o justify_v the_o assertion_n mark_v 2.5_o he_o tell_v one_o who_o be_v bring_v to_o he_o sick_a of_o the_o palsy_n thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o v._o 7._o
they_o present_o accuse_v he_o of_o blasphemy_n and_o that_o upon_o a_o know_a and_o undoubted_a principle_n that_o none_o can_v forgive_v sin_n but_o god_n he_o do_v not_o at_o all_o excuse_n the_o thing_n or_o make_v himself_o a_o depute_a god_n or_o a_o god_n by_o deputation_n a_o sort_n of_o god_n of_o these_o gentleman_n make_n he_o grant_v that_o none_o but_o god_n can_v forgive_v sin_n then_o he_o convince_v they_o by_o a_o miracle_n and_o leave_v they_o the_o conclusion_n to_o draw_v which_o be_v easy_a to_o cure_v or_o to_o forgive_v he_o that_o do_v the_o one_o must_v be_v god_n with_o a_o article_n too_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o he_o that_o do_v the_o other_o must_v be_v absolute_a master_n of_o nature_n and_o that_o be_v god_n the_o jew_n be_v so_o far_o persuade_v that_o christ_n by_o calling_n god_n his_o father_n speak_v of_o himself_o not_o as_o of_o a_o son_n by_o adoption_n or_o any_o other_o title_n but_o as_o a_o son_n by_o nature_n coequal_a and_o coeternal_a that_o they_o never_o understand_v he_o otherwise_o this_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n from_o joh._n 5._o christ_n cure_v a_o man_n of_o a_o infirmity_n of_o 38._o year_n stand_v v._o 9_o but_o it_o be_v on_o the_o sabbath_n day_n v._o 16._o the_o jew_n presecute_v he_o and_o seek_v to_o slay_v he_o he_o answer_v v._o 17._o my_o father_n work_v hitherto_o and_o i_o work_v they_o take_v from_o these_o word_n a_o new_a occasion_n to_o accuse_v he_o at_o first_o they_o be_v only_o angry_a for_o his_o heal_n on_o the_o sabbath_n but_o now_o v._n 18._o they_o seek_v the_o more_o to_o kill_v he_o ..._o because_o he_o say_v also_o that_o god_n be_v his_o father_n his_o own_o father_n say_v the_o evangelist_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d make_v himself_o equal_a with_o god_n that_o equality_n can_v not_o arise_v simple_o from_o call_v god_n his_o father_n this_o be_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o jew_n as_o it_o be_v now_o of_o christian_n but_o they_o make_v it_o to_o consist_v in_o this_o assertion_n that_o as_o the_o father_n be_v above_o the_o sabbath_n the_o divine_a nature_n not_o be_v confine_v to_o those_o rule_n which_o it_o prescribe_v to_o we_o mortal_n christ_n say_v the_o same_o of_o himself_o he_o make_v himself_o the_o son_n of_o god_n equal_a to_o his_o father_n which_o equality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n the_o jew_n suppose_v and_o acknowledge_v but_o seek_v to_o kill_v he_o because_o he_o pretend_v to_o assume_v it_o to_o himself_o this_o the_o father_n urge_v against_o the_o arrian_n now_o christ_n reply_v without_o any_o variation_n equivocation_n or_o subterfuge_n he_o be_v plain_a and_o prove_v all_o along_o the_o unity_n and_o sameness_n of_o nature_n with_o the_o father_n he_o say_v v._o 19_o that_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o of_o himself_o which_o do_v not_o imply_v weakness_n and_o insufficiency_n as_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n have_v abuse_v that_o text_n pag._n 6._o but_o show_v only_o that_o he_o can_v act_v from_o no_o other_o principle_n but_o that_o by_o which_o he_o exist_v that_o he_o have_v his_o operation_n from_o he_o from_o who_o he_o have_v his_o be_v and_z as_o a_o infallible_a proof_n that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o that_o place_n he_o show_v a_o extent_n of_o operation_n as_o great_a as_o the_o father_n what_o thing_n soever_o the_o father_n do_v these_o do_v the_o son_n likewise_o this_o be_v the_o divinity_n of_o theodoret_n or_o rather_o of_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n insert_v in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o history_n it_o be_v that_o of_o st._n basil_n or_o the_o author_n of_o the_o first_o book_n contr_n eunom_fw-la and_o of_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o greek_a father_n it_o be_v that_o of_o st._n hilary_n lib._n 7._o de_fw-fr trin._n it_o be_v that_o of_o st._n austin_n who_o tract_n 20._o in_o joann_n have_v these_o admirable_a word_n whatsoever_o the_o son_n have_v to_o do_v he_o have_v from_o the_o father_n the_o power_n to_o do_v it_o why_o do_v he_o receive_v from_o the_o father_n the_o power_n to_o act_v because_o he_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o father_n to_o be_v his_o son_n he_o have_v his_o power_n from_o the_o father_n because_o from_o the_o father_n he_o have_v his_o essence_n christ_n prosecute_v the_o argument_n and_o show_v how_o god_n have_v communicate_v all_o thing_n to_o he_o even_o as_o a_o reward_n of_o his_o profound_a humiliation_n in_o take_v our_o nature_n upon_o he_o v._o 27._o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man._n but_o that_o notwithstanding_o his_o outward_a appearance_n in_o infirmity_n and_o weakness_n he_o have_v a_o original_a and_o eternal_a be_v with_o the_o father_n v._o 26._o as_o the_o father_n have_v life_n in_o himself_o so_o have_v he_o give_v the_o son_n to_o have_v life_n in_o himself_o st._n austin_n lib._n 3._o contra_fw-la maxim_n c._n 14._o he_o have_v give_v he_o the_o same_o life_n that_o he_o have_v such_o as_o he_o have_v it_o himself_o he_o have_v give_v it_o he_o he_o have_v give_v it_o as_o infinite_a as_o he_o have_v it_o in_o himself_o he_o conclude_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v honour_v the_o son_n even_o as_o they_o honour_v the_o father_n the_o same_o honour_n be_v due_a to_o the_o same_o divine_a essence_n the_o sum_n of_o all_o be_v this_o christ_n do_v not_o at_o all_o grant_n that_o he_o be_v a_o inferior_a or_o a_o representative_a god_n as_o these_o gentleman_n will_v have_v it_o by_o the_o concession_n that_o some_o man_n be_v call_v god_n but_o conclude_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o if_o man_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o blasphemy_n by_o take_v that_o name_n how_o much_o less_o be_v he_o who_o be_v and_o on_o every_o occasion_n assert_n himself_o to_o be_v the_o true_a god_n this_o take_v off_o at_o once_o the_o objection_n from_o all_o those_o text_n which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n think_v unanswerable_a that_o he_o be_v faithful_a to_o he_o that_o make_v he_o that_o we_o be_v christ_n and_o christ_n be_v god_n that_o he_o humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a that_o the_o son_n shall_v be_v subject_a to_o he_o who_o put_v all_o thing_n under_o he_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v not_o his_o doctrine_n that_o he_o intercede_v with_o god_n for_o we_o and_o a_o great_a many_o more_o this_o author_n lay_v a_o great_a weight_n on_o all_o those_o text_n which_o prove_v the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n his_o first_o letter_n contain_v whatsoever_o the_o evangelist_n have_v say_v of_o the_o passion_n and_o infirmity_n of_o our_o nature_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v any_o part_n of_o this_o that_o we_o think_v it_o the_o great_a comfort_n religion_n can_v give_v that_o christ_n be_v true_o man._n we_o own_v it_o and_o glory_n in_o it_o that_o jesus_n christ_n the_o righteous_a our_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n be_v in_o all_o thing_n like_o we_o sin_n only_o except_v but_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n speak_v so_o full_o to_o his_o divinity_n with_o the_o father_n in_o the_o communication_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n and_o eternal_a be_v lead_v we_o not_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o god_n because_o he_o be_v man_n or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o man_n because_o he_o be_v god_n this_o be_v not_o to_o interpret_v but_o to_o destory_n one_o scripture_n by_o another_o they_o lead_v we_o to_o take_v both_o the_o part_n of_o the_o mystery_n as_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n propose_v it_o and_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v true_o god_n and_o true_o man._n in_o short_a these_o gentleman_n can_v never_o satisify_v any_o man_n conscience_n in_o this_o point_n nor_o can_v they_o justify_v themselves_o to_o the_o christian_a church_n from_o who_o faith_n they_o have_v depart_v all_o that_o wit_n and_o eloquence_n which_o they_o be_v so_o much_o master_n of_o and_o all_o those_o argument_n which_o they_o have_v treat_v with_o so_o much_o accuracy_n be_v of_o no_o force_n against_o the_o proof_n allege_v i_o will_v conclude_v this_o letter_n of_o christ_n pre-eternity_n with_o this_o place_n of_o origen_n contr_n cell_n lib._n 6._o this_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o how_o difficult_a it_o be_v to_o know_v he_o who_o have_v make_v darkness_n his_o pavilion_n round_o about_o he_o he_o say_v that_o the_o father_n be_v know_v true_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d only_o by_o the_o word_n he_o prove_v this_o by_o matt._n 11.27_o neither_o know_v any_o man_n the_o father_n save_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o whosoever_o the_o son_n will_v reveal_v he_o for_o none_o say_v he_o can_v know_v he_o true_o and_o as_o he_o deserve_v to_o be_v know_v who_o be_v beget_v from_o all_o eternity_n
and_o bear_v before_o any_o create_a substance_n but_o the_o father_n who_o have_v beget_v he_o nor_o can_v any_o know_v the_o father_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n but_o his_o live_a word_n who_o be_v both_o his_o wisdom_n and_o truth_n i_o remain_v sir_n your_o humble_a etc._n etc._n the_o four_o letter_n sir_n have_v prove_v the_o pre-existence_n and_o pre-eternity_n of_o christ_n his_o antemundane_a and_o eternal_a be_v with_o god_n before_o he_o assume_v our_o nature_n and_o show_v how_o deficient_a or_o to_o use_v the_o very_a word_n of_o your_o friend_n in_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 23._o how_o harsh_a and_o strain_a their_o answer_n seem_v to_o be_v to_o the_o text_n produce_v against_o they_o it_o remain_v to_o make_v good_a that_o christ_n be_v god_n by_o a_o communication_n of_o the_o divine_a essence_n and_o that_o the_o scripture_n represent_v he_o to_o be_v god_n after_o a_o manner_n applicable_a to_o no_o creature_n the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o assertion_n be_v ground_v on_o phil._n 2.6_o and_o foll_v v._o the_o apostle_n propose_v christ_n to_o the_o philippian_n as_o a_o divine_a instance_n of_o humility_n and_o obedience_n he_o make_v both_o to_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o be_v real_o god_n and_o equal_a with_o god_n yet_o he_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n but_o become_v man_n and_o humble_a himself_o to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n be_v clear_a than_o any_o commentary_n v._o 6._o who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n the_o form_n of_o god_n be_v here_o the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o god_n for_o though_o in_o some_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d form_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o a_o image_n or_o a_o personal_a appearance_n yet_o in_o this_o it_o be_v determine_v to_o this_o sense_n of_o nature_n and_o essence_n by_o the_o next_o verse_n where_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n be_v certain_o the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o a_o servant_n the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subsist_v rather_o than_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n as_o these_o gentleman_n will_v not_o deny_v that_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v translate_v imply_v a_o real_a and_o a_o actual_a in-being_a in_o the_o divine_a nature_n st._n paul_n have_v assert_v that_o christ_n subsist_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n say_v that_o he_o think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n a_o expression_n which_o crumble_v to_o dust_v the_o poor_a notion_n of_o a_o god_n by_o deputation_n as_o socinus_n have_v contrive_v and_o a_o inferior_a though_o a_o excellent_a god_n as_o arrius_n for_o what_o inferior_a or_o depute_a god_n dare_v claim_v a_o equality_n with_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n audet_fw-la pariari_fw-la deo_fw-la say_v tertullian_n what_o moses_n solomon_n what_o lord_n lieutenant_n of_o a_o county_n or_o mayor_n of_o a_o town_n because_o the_o scripture_n call_v magistrate_n god_n will_v pretend_v it_o to_o be_v no_o robbery_n to_o equal_v themselves_o with_o god_n the_o excessive_a humility_n of_o christ_n appear_v then_o in_o this_o that_o though_o god_n and_o equal_a with_o god_n yet_o v._n 7._o he_o make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n semetipsum_fw-la exinanivit_fw-la read_v the_o old_a latin_a exhaust_v himself_o say_v tertullian_n contr_n marci_n more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o original_a he_o lessen_v he_o empty_v himself_o he_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n and_o be_v make_v in_o the_o likeness_n of_o man_n both_o so_o high_o disproportionate_a to_o the_o infinite_a be_v of_o god_n v._n 8._o he_o carry_v yet_o the_o humiliation_n to_o a_o more_o stupendous_a degree_n for_o be_v find_v in_o fashion_n as_o a_o man_n he_o humble_v himself_o and_o become_v obedient_a unto_o death_n even_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cross_n there_o be_v then_o not_o only_o a_o plain_a assertion_n but_o a_o visible_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n there_o be_v a_o god_n become_v a_o servant_n and_o a_o man_n and_o suffer_v for_o we_o in_o that_o humanity_n which_o he_o be_v please_v to_o assume_v the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a history_n pag._n 37._o except_v against_o this_o he_o say_v one_a that_o it_o can_v be_v the_o design_n of_o the_o former_a part_n of_o these_o word_n to_o intimate_v that_o christ_n be_v god_n because_o it_o be_v add_v at_o last_o that_o god_n have_v exalt_v he_o and_o give_v he_o a_o name_n that_o be_v above_o every_o name_n these_o word_n plain_o distinguish_v christ_n from_o god_n as_o one_o who_o be_v not_o himself_o god_n but_o exalt_v by_o god_n 2_o that_o this_o have_v oblige_v several_a judicious_a and_o learned_a trinitarian_n to_o interpret_v the_o whole_a context_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v a_o man._n 3_o he_o explain_v pag._n 38._o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n only_o to_o be_v like_o god_n by_o a_o communication_n of_o the_o divine_a power_n 4_o he_o do_v not_o translate_v as_o we_o do_v think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n but_o commit_v not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n i._n e._n do_v not_o rob_v god_n of_o his_o honour_n by_o arrogate_a to_o himself_o to_o be_v god_n the_o answerer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n pag._n 36._o and_o foll_v say_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n only_o he_o bring_v in_o a_o tale_n and_o a_o proverb_n the_o tale_n be_v of_o a_o countryman_n who_o without_o a_o remnant_n of_o greek_a or_o latin_a do_v yet_o puzzle_v his_o vicar_n by_o ask_v whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_a whether_o the_o true_a read_n be_v think_v it_o not_o robbery_n or_o only_o think_v not_o robbery_n to_o which_o last_o the_o vicar_n yield_v the_o countryman_n be_v satisfy_v that_o this_o text_n do_v destroy_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n the_o proverb_n be_v that_o every_o like_a be_v not_o the_o same_o and_o therefore_o that_o since_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n that_o be_v like_o god_n as_o adam_n and_o all_o other_o man_n he_o can_v be_v god_n he_o say_v further_a that_o it_o be_v both_o moral_o and_o physical_o impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v do_v any_o of_o these_o thing_n and_o undergo_v any_o of_o these_o change_n he_o observe_v and_o that_o socinus_n have_v do_v before_o that_o if_o christ_n be_v equal_a with_o god_n he_o can_v be_v god_n since_o nothing_o can_v be_v equal_a to_o itself_o he_o cite_v christopher_n sandius_n who_o have_v make_v a_o considerable_a collection_n of_o author_n father_n as_o well_o as_o modern_a who_o confess_v that_o this_o text_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n as_o man_n and_o not_o as_o god_n the_o answerer_n to_o two_o discourse_n of_o one_o mounseur_fw-fr la_fw-fr motté_fw-fr do_v out_o of_o french_a repeat_v all_o this_o in_o other_o word_n only_o he_o be_v so_o confident_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d must_v not_o be_v translate_v think_v it_o not_o robbery_n that_o pag._n 11._o he_o send_v we_o to_o the_o school_n boy_n and_o pag._n 8._o to_o the_o lexicon_n i_o hope_v they_o be_v person_n of_o too_o much_o judgement_n to_o take_v this_o for_o a_o answer_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n because_o god_n have_v exalt_v he_o and_o god_n can_v exalt_v god_n for_o all_o that_o be_v or_o ever_o be_v pretend_v from_o thence_o be_v not_o that_o god_n have_v exalt_v god_n but_o god_n have_v exalt_v that_o humane_a nature_n that_o man_n christ_n jesus_n assume_v by_o the_o word_n to_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n that_o other_o sort_n of_o reason_v be_v as_o bad_a as_o this_o that_o if_o he_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n he_o can_v be_v god_n because_o nothing_o can_v be_v equal_a to_o itself_o i_o suppose_v they_o mean_v because_o equality_n imply_v comparison_n and_o comparison_n exclude_v identity_n this_o be_v certain_o false_a in_o geometry_n and_o false_a again_o in_o divinity_n but_o admit_v the_o proposition_n as_o it_o lie_v it_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o question_n the_o design_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o to_o compare_v christ_n with_o god_n or_o a_o god_n with_o another_o god_n but_o only_o to_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v that_o supreme_a god_n who_o humble_v himself_o to_o that_o degree_n as_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o form_n of_o a_o servant_n now_o what_o more_o significant_a sort_n of_o expression_n can_v be_v use_v than_o this_o that_o though_o he_o be_v god_n and_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v all_o the_o perfection_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n to_o be_v his_o own_o which_o be_v the_o full_a and_o only_a importance_n of_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n yet_o he_o humble_v himself_o to_o death_n etc._n etc._n i_o hope_v also_o that_o they_o be_v
not_o in_o earnest_n when_o they_o bring_v sandius_n with_o his_o catalogue_n of_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a trinitarian_n since_o they_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o all_o the_o greek_a father_n concern_v in_o this_o dispute_n who_o understand_v i_o hope_v their_o own_o language_n better_o than_o any_o of_o we_o it_o be_v more_o than_o high_o probable_a that_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a history_n and_o of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n who_o be_v real_o accurate_a writer_n can_v give_v a_o far_o better_a account_n of_o any_o english_a phrase_n now_o in_o use_n and_o better_o understand_v the_o extent_n and_o importance_n of_o it_o than_o a_o frenchman_n or_o a_o dutchman_n who_o though_o never_o so_o learned_a and_o judicious_a will_v twelve_o or_o thirteen_o hundred_o year_n hence_o criticise_a paraphrase_n and_o give_v another_o sense_n to_o that_o phrase_n than_o what_o they_o give_v themselves_o since_o i_o say_v all_o the_o greek_a father_n who_o understand_v the_o force_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d think_v these_o word_n a_o undoubted_a and_o clear_a testimony_n of_o christ_n divinity_n the_o natural_a impossibility_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v a_o old_a objection_n make_v to_o lactantius_n and_o confute_v by_o that_o father_n negant_fw-la deo_fw-la dignum_fw-la ut_fw-la homo_fw-la fieri_fw-la vellet_fw-la ...._o ut_fw-la passionibus_fw-la ut_fw-la doloribus_fw-la sese_fw-la ipse_fw-la subjiceret_fw-la they_o deny_v that_o it_o be_v worthy_a of_o god_n to_o become_v man_n and_o subject_n himself_o to_o grief_n and_o suffering_n this_o be_v the_o constant_a mothod_n of_o these_o gentleman_n always_o to_o return_v to_o the_o how_o can_v it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o so_o because_o it_o be_v impossible_a we_o say_v it_o be_v possible_a because_o it_o be_v so_o and_o it_o be_v so_o because_o it_o be_v reveal_v it_o be_v dinsingenuous_a to_o be_v ever_o part_v from_o the_o point_n in_o question_n which_o be_v the_o revelation_n to_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o which_o be_v above_o our_o reach_n all_o these_o thing_n consider_v which_o real_o be_v not_o worth_a answer_v may_v not_o i_o have_v the_o liberty_n to_o tell_v your_o friend_n what_o they_o say_v to_o mounseur_fw-fr la_fw-fr motté_fw-fr pag._n 10._o it_o be_v a_o very_a thin_a sophistry_n this_o when_o a_o author_n leave_v off_o to_o speak_v to_o the_o vulgar_a and_o will_v needs_o undertake_v in_o this_o very_a passage_n phil._n 2.6_o 7_o 8._o to_o speak_v to_o the_o learned_a he_o shall_v bring_v something_o more_o substantial_a to_o blind_v such_o eye_n as_o they_o in_o short_a the_o stress_n of_o the_o difficulty_n lie_v here_o whether_o to_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v the_o nature_n or_o only_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n such_o as_o adam_n and_o all_o other_o man_n have_v and_o whether_o the_o translation_n be_v right_a think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n that_o the_o form_n of_o god_n be_v the_o divine_a essence_n be_v evince_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o greek_a father_n theodoret_n basil_n st._n chrysostom_n theophilact_v who_o not_o only_o speak_v their_o own_o language_n but_o be_v man_n of_o a_o admirable_a eloquence_n and_o purity_n of_o speech_n and_o indeed_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d subsist_v it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o it_o be_v against_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o philosophy_n of_o sense_n of_o speech_n if_o form_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o accidental_a form_n to_o use_v the_o word_n subsist_v which_o imply_v of_o itself_o a_o communication_n participation_n or_o in-being_a in_o the_o same_o nature_n to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n subsist_v in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o man_n be_v not_o to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v like_o other_o man_n or_o have_v the_o figure_n of_o a_o man_n but_o that_o he_o be_v real_o a_o man_n that_o he_o have_v human_a nature_n communicate_v to_o he_o to_o pretend_v that_o the_o form_n of_o god_n be_v only_o a_o communication_n of_o a_o divine_a power_n of_o miracle_n etc._n etc._n if_o this_o flow_v from_o a_o communication_n of_o essence_n as_o matt._n 28.18_o all_o power_n be_v give_v i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n joh._n 14.10_o the_o father_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o he_o do_v the_o work_n act._n 2.22_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n a_o man_n approve_v of_o god_n among_o you_o by_o miracle_n ...._o which_o god_n do_v by_o he_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o you_o be_v a_o notion_n tolerable_a though_o very_o improper_a but_o if_o it_o be_v only_o a_o communication_n of_o a_o power_n foreign_a to_o we_o to_o which_o we_o have_v no_o relation_n and_o in_o which_o we_o be_v only_o instrumental_a such_o as_o be_v in_o moses_n in_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n be_v a_o ridiculous_a notion_n to_o subsist_v in_o a_o miraculous_a power_n that_o be_v to_o be_v a_o miraculous_a power_n be_v a_o irrational_a and_o unintelligible_a way_n of_o speak_v the_o great_a erasmus_n then_o and_o the_o illustrious_a grotius_n from_o who_o they_o have_v borrow_a this_o explication_n be_v great_o and_o illustrious_o mistake_v to_o deal_v with_o candour_n i_o humble_o beg_v what_o sense_n can_v be_v make_v of_o this_o let_v this_o mind_n be_v in_o you_o which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o be_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n a_o man_n make_v in_o the_o similitude_n of_o god_n as_o other_o man_n be_v yet_o become_v man_n for_o your_o sake_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n make_v himself_o of_o no_o reputation_n be_v the_o conceal_n of_o his_o miracle_n as_o these_o gentleman_n interpret_v it_o be_v unreasonable_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n his_o miraculous_a birth_n of_o a_o virgin_n his_o star_n in_o the_o east_n his_o be_v reveal_v to_o the_o shepherd_n by_o the_o angel_n his_o be_v preach_v by_o the_o baptist_n god_n own_v he_o for_o his_o son_n his_o do_v good_a among_o all_o man_n his_o miraculous_a work_n the_o raise_n of_o lazarus_n the_o prodigious_a eclipse_n at_o his_o death_n the_o continual_a attendance_n of_o the_o multitude_n upon_o he_o make_v he_o the_o most_o famous_a person_n in_o the_o world_n the_o gospel_n whole_o contradict_v the_o injurious_a assertion_n matt._n 4.24_o matt._n 9.31_o and_o 14.1_o luk._n 1.15_o mark_n 1.28_o that_o think_v it_o not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n be_v true_o translate_v i_o have_v this_o to_o offer_v one_a that_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o latin_a father_n render_v it_o thus_o and_o that_o no_o exception_n be_v make_v against_o it_o by_o the_o arrian_n to_o who_o they_o produce_v this_o text._n 2_o that_o all_o the_o public_a authentic_a and_o receive_v translation_n read_v it_o as_o we_o do_v 3_o that_o the_o it_o which_o this_o sharp-nosed_a countryman_n smell_v to_o be_v want_v in_o the_o text_n add_v nothing_o to_o its_o force_n and_o that_o think_v no_o robbery_n be_v as_o home_o to_o the_o question_n as_o think_v it_o not_o robbery_n since_o the_o natural_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n the_o very_a first_o impression_n which_o they_o natural_o give_v be_v that_o christ_n do_v not_o think_v to_o be_v a_o robber_n guilty_a of_o theft_n and_o injustice_n in_o equal_v himself_o to_o god_n the_o other_o be_v strain_v a_o sense_n of_o yesterday_o and_o invent_v in_o these_o latter_a time_n to_o serve_v a_o turn_n 4_o that_o the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o verse_n who_o subsist_v in_o the_o form_n of_o god_n make_v that_o sense_n impossible_a for_o if_o he_o subsist_v in_o the_o form_n or_o nature_n of_o god_n how_o can_v he_o who_o be_v god_n arrogate_v to_o himself_o to_o be_v god_n 5_o that_o the_o translation_n of_o these_o gentleman_n commit_v not_o robbery_n by_o equal_v himself_o with_o god_n be_v a_o most_o notorious_a falsification_n of_o a_o text._n i_o will_v not_o send_v they_o to_o school_n boy_n and_o lexicon_n to_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d civility_n and_o breed_n must_v never_o be_v banish_v from_o the_o hot_a dispute_n i_o will_v only_o say_v en_fw-fr passant_a that_o learned_a man_n use_v to_o correct_a lexicon_n and_o dictionary_n and_o not_o to_o be_v correct_v by_o they_o but_o i_o appeal_v to_o themselves_o and_o beg_v of_o they_o to_o know_v one_a whether_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o signify_v all_o the_o world_n over_o robbery_n and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d thought_n judge_v count_v and_o therefore_o whether_o think_v not_o count_v not_o robbery_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o god_n be_v not_o a_o exact_a translation_n 2_o i_o beg_v that_o they_o will_v produce_v any_o one_o greek_a author_n either_o sacred_a or_o profane_a who_o render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o commit_v robbery_n i_o pass_v by_o that_o other_o strange_a stroke_n of_o render_v to_o be_v
equal_a with_o god_n by_o equal_v himself_o with_o god_n thus_o you_o see_v sir_n your_o friend_n be_v so_o take_v up_o with_o their_o new_a creation_n that_o they_o assume_v to_o themselves_o a_o power_n to_o create_v a_o new_a sense_n to_o some_o word_n a_o sense_n which_o they_o never_o have_v nor_o can_v never_o have_v coloss_n 2.9_o the_o apostle_n have_v assert_v this_o sacred_a truth_n in_o few_o word_n but_o comprehensive_a v._o 3._o in_o he_o christ_n be_v hide_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n v._o 7._o the_o colossian_n be_v to_o be_v root_v and_o build_v up_o in_o he_o v._o 8._o philosophy_n will_v rather_o deceive_v than_o inform_v they_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o the_o element_n of_o the_o world_n whether_o the_o weak_a notice_n of_o the_o gentile_n or_o the_o observance_n of_o the_o jewish_a oeconomy_n be_v all_o insufficient_a none_o but_o christ_n can_v supply_v their_o want_n and_o make_v they_o true_o know_v and_o good_a st._n paul_n give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o in_o he_o dwell_v all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a our_o translation_n come_v short_a of_o the_o energy_n of_o the_o greek_a text_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v render_v thus_o for_o in_o he_o dwell_v the_o whole_a fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n essential_o a_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d usual_a in_o the_o scripture_n this_o prove_v then_o all_o that_o the_o several_a sort_n of_o heretic_n have_v deny_v of_o christ_n a_o communication_n not_o of_o power_n or_o virtue_n as_o in_o moses_n or_o the_o prophet_n but_o of_o nature_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o divine_a nature_n a_o communication_n not_o figurative_a sacramental_a or_o representative_a but_o real_a and_o substantial_a a_o communication_n not_o partial_a transient_a or_o begin_v in_o time_n but_o the_o whole_a nature_n the_o whole_a fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n a_o communication_n suppose_v a_o distinction_n of_o person_n against_o the_o sabellian_o him_z who_o communicate_v and_o he_o to_o who_o it_o be_v communicate_v col._n 1.19_o for_o it_o please_v the_o father_n that_o in_o he_o the_o whole_a fullness_n shall_v dwell_v a_o communication_n which_o clear_o show_v against_o arrian_n nestorian_n socinian_n the_o hypostatical_a union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n for_o it_o be_v in_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o his_o adorable_a person_n in_o christ_n the_o word_n make_v flesh_n that_o this_o divine_a nature_n dwell_v with_o all_o the_o property_n attribute_n qualification_n which_o belong_v to_o it_o all_o human_a apprehension_n and_o expression_n be_v infinite_o short_a of_o this_o inspire_a way_n of_o speak_v of_o st._n paul_n all_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a to_o this_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 39_o answer_n somewhat_o confuse_o contrary_a to_o his_o custom_n he_o say_v that_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n be_v the_o fullness_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v by_o eph._n 3.19_o where_o the_o apostle_n wish_n that_o they_o may_v be_v fill_v with_o all_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n this_o christ_n have_v and_o he_o have_v fill_v we_o christian_n with_o it_o he_o say_v that_o this_o knowledge_n dwell_v in_o he_o bodily_a in_o opposition_n to_o that_o imperfect_a umbratile_a and_o unsincere_a knowledge_n of_o god_n which_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v v._o 8._o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o philosophy_n and_o philosopher_n of_o greece_n who_o in_o st._n paul_n time_n be_v in_o great_a esteem_n among_o the_o colossian_n he_o add_v that_o this_o be_v the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o orthodox_n interpreter_n it_o be_v true_a that_o some_o interpreter_n who_o these_o gentleman_n always_o honour_n with_o the_o title_n of_o most_o learned_a if_o they_o but_o speak_v what_o please_v they_o have_v oppose_v these_o word_n not_o only_o to_o the_o philosophy_n of_o the_o greek_n but_o even_o to_o the_o law_n which_o be_v only_o a_o shadow_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v christ_n be_v the_o body_n as_o the_o syriack_n read_v the_o 17._o v._o the_o substance_n and_o perfection_n of_o knowledge_n and_o there_o be_v as_o much_o difference_n between_o their_o doctrine_n and_o he_o as_o there_o be_v between_o the_o shadow_n and_o the_o body_n but_o two_o thing_n this_o author_n have_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o one_a that_o these_o most_o learned_a interpreter_n do_v only_o deliver_v this_o as_o a_o secondary_a interpretation_n leave_v the_o primary_n which_o i_o have_v lay_v before_o you_o in_o its_o full_a force_n 2_o that_o this_o interpretation_n real_o suppose_v and_o resolve_v itself_o into_o the_o first_o the_o apostle_n desire_v the_o colossian_n to_o avoid_v the_o vain_a philosophy_n of_o the_o greek_n that_o science_n false_o so_o call_v and_o the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o world_n those_o imperfect_a way_n of_o man_n invention_n to_o bring_v and_o reconcile_v they_o to_o god_n even_o all_o the_o ceremonial_a law_n which_o though_o prescribe_v by_o god_n himself_o yet_o be_v only_o in_o order_n to_o somewhat_o better_a and_o that_o they_o shall_v stick_v to_o christ_n be_v root_v and_o build_v up_o in_o he_o in_o who_o and_o by_o who_o they_o shall_v be_v fill_v and_o complete_v he_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o this_o because_o in_o he_o be_v hide_v the_o treasure_n of_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n and_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o principality_n and_o power_n and_o all_o this_o be_v true_a because_o he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o wise_a and_o a_o rational_a man_n according_a to_o the_o world_n for_o such_o be_v the_o philosopher_n nor_o a_o man_n send_v from_o god_n for_o such_o be_v moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n but_o he_o be_v god_n himself_o come_v down_o in_o our_o flesh_n for_o in_o he_o dwell_v the_o whole_a fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n bodily_a substantial_o essential_o i_o be_o satisfy_v that_o this_o author_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o application_n of_o eph._n 3.19_o to_o have_v any_o solidity_n but_o there_o be_v in_o the_o dispute_v text_n the_o fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o in_o this_o the_o fullness_n of_o god_n these_o two_o word_n be_v alike_o and_o therefore_o must_v be_v make_v to_o jump_v when_o he_o can_v but_o know_v that_o all_o the_o interpreter_n even_o the_o belove_a erasmus_n and_o grotius_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o apostle_n mean_v no_o more_o by_o this_o than_o that_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o our_o heart_n by_o faith_n and_o that_o we_o may_v have_v as_o much_o of_o the_o favour_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o we_o can_v i_o beg_v to_o know_v with_o what_o candour_n he_o have_v translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n by_o the_o deity_n or_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o though_o sometime_o synonymous_n yet_o can_v be_v so_o here_o but_o what_o can_v more_o effectual_o prove_v the_o communication_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n to_o christ_n than_o that_o he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n joh._n 1.18_o no_o man_n have_v see_v god_n at_o any_o time_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n which_o be_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o father_n he_o have_v declare_v he_o a_o title_n peculiar_a to_o christ_n and_o expressive_a of_o all_o that_o can_v be_v conceive_v of_o he_o his_o consubstantiality_n his_o co-eternity_n his_o equality_n with_o the_o father_n these_o gentleman_n think_v it_o a_o very_a strong_a argument_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n because_o in_o the_o apostolical_a creed_n the_o unchangeable_a rule_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o first_o article_n give_v the_o name_n of_o god_n only_o to_o the_o father_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n and_o the_o second_o do_v not_o say_v and_o in_o god_n the_o son_n but_o and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n not_o consider_v that_o the_o word_n only_a son_n the_o same_o with_o only_o beget_v here_o be_v a_o full_a expression_n of_o his_o divinity_n than_o if_o the_o name_n god_n have_v be_v give_v he_o in_o the_o article_n for_o this_o will_v not_o have_v satisfy_v these_o gentleman_n they_o will_v have_v be_v apt_a to_o say_v still_o that_o the_o first_o article_n be_v speak_v of_o he_o who_o be_v only_o and_o eminent_o god_n and_o the_o second_o or_o three_o of_o a_o god_n by_o deputation_n of_o one_o not_o true_o god_n but_o only_o honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o god_n this_o will_v not_o have_v remove_v the_o objection_n nor_o prevent_v that_o of_o the_o tritheist_n who_o see_v every_o person_n in_o the_o creed_n name_v god_n will_v have_v conclude_v not_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o god_n but_o three_o real_a go_n whereas_o the_o alwise_a god_n have_v effectual_o obviate_v this_o by_o propose_v the_o divine_a nature_n
to_o our_o belief_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n in_o which_o three_o person_n subsist_v the_o father_n who_o be_v maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n his_o only_a son_n who_o be_v our_o lord_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n who_o sanctity_n the_o catholic_n church_n this_o expression_n the_o only_a son_n or_o the_o only_o beget_v be_v a_o stop_n to_o all_o those_o exception_n for_o he_o can_v be_v a_o depute_a god_n who_o be_v a_o son_n a_o only_a son_n beget_v as_o the_o father_n and_o council_n express_v it_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n he_o must_v be_v god_n of_o god_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n the_o eternal_a god_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n this_o suppose_a there_o be_v no_o objection_n can_v be_v pretend_v god_n can_v have_v a_o son_n but_o it_o must_v be_v by_o a_o communication_n of_o his_o substance_n a_o eternal_a being_n can_v communicate_v itself_o as_o we_o mortal_n do_v within_o the_o measure_n and_o succession_n of_o time_n a_o mortal_a beget_v another_o mortal_a he_o can_v give_v no_o other_o substance_n then_o what_o he_o have_v a_o eternal_a be_v give_v what_o he_o be_v himself_o a_o eternal_a and_o divine_a be_v this_o lead_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o col._n 1.15_o 2._o cor._n 4.4_o heb._n 1.3_o where_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o image_n of_o god_n the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n text_n so_o reverence_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o so_o abuse_v by_o socinus_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 38._o who_o say_v that_o those_o text_n be_v demonstration_n that_o christ_n be_v not_o god_n it_o be_v simple_o impossible_a that_o the_o image_n shall_v be_v the_o very_o be_v or_o thing_n who_o image_n it_o be_v be_v this_o reason_n true_a which_o be_v a_o mere_a sophism_n to_o reason_n of_o a_o eternal_a and_o increated_a be_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o thing_n mortal_a and_o create_v it_o can_v reach_v to_o no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o the_o son_n be_v not_o the_o father_n because_o he_o be_v the_o express_a image_n of_o his_o person_n which_o be_v true_a but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o prove_v that_o because_o he_o be_v his_o image_n he_o must_v have_v a_o communication_n of_o his_o substance_n because_o he_o be_v his_o only_a image_n as_o he_o be_v his_o only_o beget_v son_n but_o say_v these_o gentleman_n you_o run_v on_o but_o still_o you_o suppose_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v we_o agree_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n but_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o only_o beget_v imply_v a_o communication_n of_o substance_n christ_n say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 28._o be_v call_v the_o only_o beget_v on_o several_a account_n this_o especial_o that_o he_o only_o be_v beget_v by_o the_o divine_a power_n on_o a_o woman_n he_o be_v the_o only_o beget_v say_v chrellius_n because_o of_o all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n he_o be_v the_o best_a and_o most_o dear_a to_o he_o time_n be_v too_o precious_a to_o spend_v it_o in_o answer_v such_o thing_n as_o these_o be_v the_o interpretation_n of_o chrellius_n be_v trifle_v and_o that_o of_o the_o brief_a hist_n be_v absurd_a god_n be_v a_o father_n antecedent_o to_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n god_n be_v not_o the_o father_n of_o christ_n but_o as_o he_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o word_n who_o assume_v our_o nature_n have_v there_o be_v nothing_o create_v there_o will_v have_v be_v still_o a_o father_n and_o father_n of_o itself_o suppose_v a_o son_n if_o the_o father_n be_v from_o ever_o the_o son_n be_v from_o ever_o these_o ancient_a assertion_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n destroy_v the_o notion_n of_o these_o gentleman_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v a_o notion_n so_o strange_a so_o new_a so_o contrary_a to_o the_o language_n of_o scripture_n and_o to_o that_o of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o old_a heretic_n dare_v never_o offer_v at_o it_o it_o ruin_v the_o difference_n between_o christ_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o man_n for_o we_o be_v all_o the_o son_n of_o god_n nay_o we_o can_v no_o more_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v only_a son_n of_o god_n by_o adoption_n and_o only_o adopt_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o if_o he_o be_v adopt_v himself_o and_o only_o a_o coheir_n with_o we_o as_o we_o be_v coheir_n with_o he_o there_o be_v no_o more_o adoption_n the_o great_a blessing_n of_o christianity_n now_o if_o christ_n be_v the_o only_o beget_v of_o the_o father_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o be_v conceive_v of_o a_o woman_n by_o the_o divine_a power_n it_o be_v visible_a that_o he_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o adopt_a son_n as_o we_o be_v this_o second_o adam_n have_v no_o more_o of_o the_o divine_a nature_n than_o the_o first_o who_o be_v make_v of_o the_o earth_n by_o the_o divine_a power_n as_o the_o other_o be_v make_v of_o a_o woman_n and_o be_v only_o a_o adopt_a son_n whereas_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o careful_a to_o distinguish_v between_o we_o the_o adopt_a son_n and_o that_o son_n who_o be_v not_o adopt_v and_o be_v call_v the_o true_a son_n the_o only_a son_n his_o own_o son_n his_o only_o beget_v son_n that_o son_n who_o be_v send_v gal._n 4.4_o that_o we_o may_v receive_v the_o adoption_n of_o son_n it_o offer_v violence_n to_o these_o text_n to_o which_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n have_v do_v the_o advantage_n to_o show_v that_o they_o be_v proof_n against_o all_o the_o turn_v of_o wit_n joh._n 10.30_o i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o joh._n 7.29_o i_o know_v he_o for_o i_o be_o from_o he_o joh._n 10.38_o the_o father_n be_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o i_o come_v out_o from_o the_o father_n and_o to_o all_o the_o unanimous_a confession_n in_o the_o gospel_n thou_o be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o live_a god_n i_o commend_v this_o author_n to_o have_v in_o this_o place_n give_v a_o answer_n without_o a_o reason_n to_o support_v it_o he_o have_v in_o this_o as_o in_o other_o place_n evade_v and_o shift_v the_o difficulty_n he_o see_v what_o strait_n his_o explication_n of_o the_o only_o beget_v be_v liable_a to_o and_o too_o much_o modesty_n to_o have_v lay_v down_o the_o pretend_a reason_n of_o his_o friend_n they_o will_v put_v a_o sober_a philosopher_n to_o the_o blush_n i_o can_v without_o horror_n read_v smalcius_n de_fw-fr vero_fw-la &_o nature_n dei_fw-la fill_n and_o all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v to_o this_o be_v what_o st._n austin_n say_v almost_o on_o the_o same_o account_n that_o it_o be_v sceleratissima_fw-la opinio_fw-la a_o most_o execrable_a opinion_n serm._n 191._o the_o temp_n i_o will_v multiply_v no_o more_o argument_n on_o this_o subject_n the_o place_n allege_v be_v so_o full_a and_o forcible_a and_o the_o shift_n of_o these_o gentleman_n so_o visible_a that_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o persuade_v any_o equitable_a person_n i_o pass_v to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o assertion_n that_o the_o name_n of_o god_n be_v give_v to_o the_o saviour_n after_o a_o manner_n applicable_a to_o no_o creature_n i_o will_v not_o lay_v down_o the_o rule_n which_o the_o socinian_o have_v invent_v to_o discern_v when_o the_o word_n god_n must_v be_v understand_v of_o that_o god_n who_o be_v so_o by_o nature_n and_o of_o the_o depute_a god_n who_o be_v only_o so_o by_o office_n they_o be_v criticism_n for_o the_o most_o part_n false_a and_o always_o little_a and_o uncertain_a i_o humble_o conceive_v that_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o god_n by_o nature_n and_o without_o controversy_n great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n see_v of_o angel_n preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n believe_v on_o in_o the_o world_n receive_v up_o into_o glory_n i_o humble_o conceive_v also_o that_o every_o word_n of_o this_o be_v accomplish_v in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o that_o this_o text_n be_v a_o epitome_n of_o the_o gospel_n god_n be_v manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n be_v the_o explication_n of_o joh._n 1.1_o and_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o explication_n of_o matt._n 3.16_o 17._o and_o lo_n the_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n descend_v ..._o and_o lo_o a_o voice_n from_o heaven_n this_o be_v my_o beloved_a son_n see_v of_o angel_n be_v the_o explication_n of_o matt._n 4.11_o and_o behold_v angel_n come_v and_o minister_v to_o he_o preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n be_v the_o explication_n of_o matt._n 28.18_o teach_v all_o nation_n believe_v on_o in_o the_o world_n be_v the_o explication_n of_o joh._n 6.69_o and_o many_o place_n of_o this_o nature_n receive_v up_o into_o glory_n be_v the_o explication_n
of_o mark_n 16.19_o he_o be_v receive_v up_o into_o heaven_n this_o text_n be_v express_v for_o the_o incarnation_n and_o the_o union_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n a_o mystery_n true_o great_a and_o incomprehensible_a god_n make_v man_n a_o admirable_a instance_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o we_o and_o a_o most_o powerful_a motive_n of_o our_o obedience_n to_o he_o these_o gentleman_n have_v make_v two_o sort_n of_o objection_n to_o this_o the_o one_o they_o have_v take_v from_o chrellius_n and_o their_o other_o professed_a friend_n the_o other_o from_o erasmus_n and_o grotius_n for_o the_o one_a the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 40._o say_v that_o if_o we_o will_v make_v sense_n of_o this_o text_n we_o must_v translate_v great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n be_v manifest_v by_o flesh_n i._n e._n god_n nature_n and_o will_n be_v manifest_v by_o flesh_n that_o be_v by_o man_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n to_o we_o gentile_n be_v justify_v in_o the_o spirit_n i._n e._n the_o same_o will_v and_o nature_n of_o god_n be_v verify_v by_o miracle_n do_v by_o the_o spirit_n or_o power_n of_o god_n be_v see_v of_o angel_n i._n e._n be_v know_v to_o the_o angel_n who_o be_v desirous_a to_o understand_v this_o new_a revelation_n believe_v on_o in_o the_o world_n receive_v with_o glory_n or_o glorious_o and_o not_o receive_v up_o into_o glory_n the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n say_v that_o by_o godwe_n may_v understand_v here_o as_o in_o divers_a other_o text_n the_o trinitarian_n themselves_o do_v not_o the_o person_n but_o the_o will_n and_o mind_n of_o god_n this_o be_v manifest_v to_o we_o by_o flesh_n that_o be_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n they_o have_v as_o much_o reason_n to_o translate_v by_o instead_o of_o in_o flesh_n as_o we_o have_v to_o translate_v by_o the_o spirit_n instead_o of_o in_o the_o spirit_n it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v receive_v up_o into_o glory_n but_o receive_v glorious_o i._n e._n extol_v magnify_v lift_v up_o he_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o understand_v the_o word_n god_n not_o of_o god_n himself_o but_o of_o his_o will_n and_o mind_n that_o we_o interpret_v it_o thus_o gal._n 1.10_o do_v i_o now_o persuade_v man_n or_o god_n do_v i_o seek_v to_o persuade_v human_a invention_n ....._o or_o the_o very_a will_n and_o command_n of_o god_n thus_o silly_a and_o bold_a criticism_n be_v make_v use_n of_o to_o undermine_v the_o christian_a faith_n the_o poverty_n of_o this_o new_a translation_n will_v be_v evident_a from_o this_o very_a observation_n that_o god_n to_o express_v the_o mind_n and_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v a_o dialect_n which_o they_o may_v have_v use_v themselves_o to_o but_o be_v whole_o unknown_a and_o unpractised_a in_o scripture_n they_o be_v desire_v to_o give_v any_o one_o single_a instance_n of_o it_o but_o clear_a plain_a and_o liable_a to_o no_o exception_n gal._n 1.10_o be_v far_o from_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n man_n do_v not_o signify_v there_o human_a invention_n nor_o god_n the_o will_n and_o command_n of_o god_n the_o generality_n of_o interpreter_n and_o indeed_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o lead_v we_o to_o this_o sense_n of_o the_o place_n do_v i_o seek_v to_o approve_v myself_o to_o man_n or_o to_o ●od_a ....._o for_o if_o yet_o i_o please_v man_n i_o shall_v not_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n their_o translate_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o flesh_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o original_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o translation_n and_o to_o the_o sense_n of_o manknd_n the_o reason_n which_o they_o give_v for_o it_o that_o we_o translate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o spirit_n be_v whole_o false_a but_o the_o last_o part_n of_o this_o text_n receive_v glorious_o that_o be_v as_o they_o say_v extol_v magnify_v and_o not_o receive_v up_o into_o glory_n be_v a_o insufferable_a attempt_n on_o the_o eye_n and_o sense_n of_o man_n they_o shall_v have_v imitate_v erasmus_n who_o have_v strain_v as_o much_o as_o possible_a every_o part_n of_o this_o text_n be_v so_o strike_v with_o the_o evidence_n of_o this_o last_o expression_n that_o though_o a_o great_a wit_n and_o a_o great_a critic_n he_o think_v it_o the_o best_a way_n to_o let_v it_o alone_o and_o say_v nothing_o to_o it_o he_o see_v clear_o that_o the_o will_n and_o mind_n of_o god_n take_v up_o to_o heaven_n be_v a_o barbarous_a way_n of_o expression_n he_o be_v sensible_a that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o dialect_n of_o the_o scripture_n mark_v 16.19_o act._n 1.11_o act._n 1.22_o be_v a_o actual_a real_a personal_a be_v take_v up_o of_o christ_n into_o heaven_n he_o know_v that_o this_o be_v the_o language_n of_o both_o the_o testament_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v use_v of_o enoch_n of_o moses_n and_o of_o elias_n the_o first_o part_n then_o of_o their_o answer_n be_v not_o solid_a and_o if_o they_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v than_o this_o they_o must_v be_v look_v upon_o as_o unreasonable_a and_o obstinate_a man_n indeed_o the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n have_v make_v a_o pretty_a paraphrase_n and_o very_o intelligible_a it_o have_v only_o that_o unhappiness_n that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o his_o sense_n and_o not_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o absolute_o depart_v from_o the_o truth_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o text_n which_o a_o paraphra_v ought_v not_o to_o do_v it_o be_v very_o divert_v to_o read_v these_o gentleman_n paraphrase_n they_o make_v what_o word_n they_o will_v and_o give_v they_o what_o sense_n they_o please_v then_o they_o muster_v all_o up_o and_o end_n in_o a_o pretty_a speech_n what_o they_o have_v borrow_a of_o grotius_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o in_o the_o text._n brief_a hist_n pag._n 44._o this_o appear_v by_o the_o syriack_n latin_n ethiopick_n armenian_n arabic_a and_o most_o ancient_a greek_a bibles_n by_o great_a many_o citation_n out_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n who_o read_v not_o god_n be_v manifest_v but_o which_o be_v manifest_v macedonius_n be_v the_o first_o who_o corrupt_v this_o text_n by_o substitute_v the_o word_n god_n instead_o of_o the_o word_n which_o and_o for_o this_o and_o other_o matter_n he_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n about_o the_o year_n 512._o the_o answerer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n pag._n 2_o &_o 3._o say_v that_o the_o latin_a syriack_n and_o armenian_a translation_n the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o st._n jerom_n himself_o a_o bigoted_a trinitarian_n read_v which_o and_o not_o god_n erasmus_n say_v that_o multa_fw-la vetera_fw-la exemplaria_fw-la many_o but_o not_o very_o many_o as_o the_o answerer_n have_v translate_v it_o of_o the_o ancient_a copy_n read_v which_o a_o read_v approve_v by_o erasmus_n himself_o grotius_n cite_v hincmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n say_v that_o the_o nestorian_n substitute_v god_n in_o the_o room_n of_o which_o the_o better_a to_o defend_v themselves_o from_o the_o eutychian_o liberatus_n the_o archdeacon_n of_o carthage_n assure_v we_o that_o macedonius_n be_v depose_v for_o so_o do_v this_o and_o some_o heat_n against_o mr._n milbourn_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o he_o have_v to_o say_v what_o erasmus_n say_v of_o his_o many_o or_o as_o this_o author_n will_v have_v it_o very_o many_o ancient_a greek_a copy_n that_o read_v which_o be_v not_o god_n with_o the_o leave_n of_o that_o great_a man_n be_v a_o real_a mistake_n beza_n examine_v himself_o this_o very_a place_n of_o erasmus_n answer_v plain_o verum_fw-la repugnant_a perpetuo_fw-la consensu_fw-la omnes_fw-la graeci_fw-la codices_fw-la but_o all_o the_o greek_a copy_n with_o a_o universal_a consent_n give_v he_o the_o lie_n all_o the_o greek_a copy_n do_v agree_v in_o the_o word_n god_n say_v one_o of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o learned_a prelate_n this_o nation_n ever_o have_v the_o joint_a consent_n say_v he_o in_o another_o place_n of_o the_o greek_a copy_n and_o interpreter_n be_v above_o the_o authority_n of_o these_o two_o translation_n he_o mean_v the_o latin_a and_o syriack_n but_o to_o examine_v this_o most_o particular_o grotius_n do_v not_o condemn_v or_o reject_v but_o only_o insinuate_v that_o he_o have_v some_o cause_n to_o suspect_v the_o read_n god_n the_o latin_a interpreter_n as_o the_o most_o ancient_a be_v the_o great_a objection_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n armenian_a ethiopick_n arabic_a be_v name_n serve_v only_o to_o fill_v the_o page_n and_o make_v the_o simple_a reader_n to_o stare_v but_o it_o will_v prove_v at_o last_o no_o objection_n for_o if_o a_o thousand_o translation_n read_v contrary_a to_o the_o original_a text_n we_o ought_v not_o to_o depart_v from_o it_o if_o the_o text_n be_v true_a genuine_a and_o indisputable_a but_o
it_o be_v not_o so_o reply_v the_o author_n grotius_n affirm_v that_o hincmarus_n a_o prelate_n so_o famous_a in_o his_o time_n be_v positive_a that_o the_o word_n god_n be_v thrust_v into_o the_o text_n by_o the_o nestorian_n and_o in_o particular_a by_o macedonius_n who_o corrupt_v the_o sincere_a read_n of_o that_o very_a place_n i_o never_o see_v either_o mr._n milbourn_n or_o his_o book_n but_o he_o may_v have_v tell_v his_o answerer_n that_o grotius_n be_v strange_o mistake_v and_o so_o must_v the_o learned_a prelate_n be_v who_o he_o have_v cite_v all_o the_o world_n can_v make_v i_o apprehend_v how_o the_o nestorian_n shall_v thrust_v the_o word_n god_n into_o a_o text_n by_o which_o they_o ruine_v themselves_o and_o their_o doctrine_n to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n nestorius_n say_v this_o very_a author_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o late_a archbishop_n pag._n 61._o say_v that_o god_n be_v not_o hypostatical_o unite_v or_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o person_n to_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n but_o only_o dwell_v in_o he_o by_o a_o more_o plentiful_a effusion_n or_o exertion_n of_o the_o divine_a presence_n and_o attribute_n than_o in_o former_a prophet_n this_o lead_v he_o to_o say_v that_o our_o saviour_n ought_v to_o be_v call_v christ_n and_o not_o god_n he_o deny_v that_o he_o can_v call_v he_o god_n etc._n etc._n i_o ask_v then_o how_o it_o can_v be_v conceive_v that_o it_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o head_n of_o the_o nestorian_n to_o change_v the_o particle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o the_o only_a thing_n that_o can_v favour_v their_o doctrine_n into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d god_n the_o only_a word_n that_o can_v ruin_v it_o be_v it_o rational_a to_o think_v that_o a_o sect_n of_o man_n who_o be_v profess_o bend_v against_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n shall_v alter_v a_o plain_a text_n to_o put_v in_o a_o word_n which_o will_v make_v it_o undisputable_a will_v it_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o next_o age_n if_o socinianism_n be_v so_o long_o live_v that_o the_o socinian_o will_v alter_v a_o text_n which_o do_v not_o prove_v the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o add_v word_n to_o it_o by_o which_o it_o may_v clear_o be_v prove_v it_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n to_o say_v that_o macedonius_n be_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n for_o falsify_v this_o text._n it_o be_v true_a that_o anastasius_n turn_v he_o out_o but_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o it_o be_v upon_o any_o such_o account_n that_o that_o make_v this_o to_o be_v undeniable_a be_v that_o this_o text_n be_v read_v by_o the_o father_n with_o the_o word_n god_n before_o macedonius_n be_v bear_v and_o even_o long_o before_o the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n st._n chrysostom_n patriarch_n himself_o of_o constantinople_n long_o before_o nestorius_n read_v in_o this_o place_n god_n be_v manifest_v etc._n etc._n so_o do_v theodoret_n so_o do_v st._n cyril_n even_o against_o this_o very_a nestorius_n so_o do_v several_a other_o father_n too_o tedious_a to_o insert_v i_o will_v add_v that_o whoever_o read_v attentive_o the_o place_n of_o hincmarus_n which_o these_o gentleman_n have_v not_o cite_v but_o be_v opusc_n 55._o cap._n 18._o &_o liberatus_n cap._n 19_o and_o he_o will_v find_v even_o in_o their_o own_o account_n the_o addition_n of_o the_o word_n god_n to_o have_v be_v impossible_a another_o objection_n be_v that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a of_o next_o authority_n with_o we_o say_v the_o author_n and_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o truth_n to_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n one_o have_v repeat_v this_o text_n with_o the_o word_n god_n take_v probable_o out_o of_o some_o marginal_a note_n where_o he_o find_v the_o word_n god_n put_v as_o a_o explanation_n of_o the_o word_n which_o in_o the_o text_n be_v answer_v by_o macarius_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o he_o mistake_v the_o read_n the_o word_n be_v which_o be_v manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n this_o make_v nothing_o against_o we_o it_o prove_v that_o this_o read_v be_v ancient_a than_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a it_o prove_v if_o the_o author_n be_v wild_a conjecture_n may_v be_v admit_v that_o if_o there_o be_v even_o any_o copy_n where_o the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o that_o the_o which_o by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o follow_a part_n of_o the_o verse_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o that_o age_n have_v put_v to_o it_o that_o marginal_a note_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o god_n it_o prove_v that_o the_o arrian_n have_v begin_v early_o to_o corrupt_v those_o text_n which_o be_v plain_a for_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n have_v this_o author_n show_v that_o upon_o this_o allegation_n of_o macarius_n the_o sacred_a council_n have_v reject_v this_o text_n it_o will_v have_v be_v of_o some_o weight_n but_o the_o mistake_n of_o that_o bishop_n appear_v by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o greek_a father_n use_v this_o text_n with_o the_o word_n god_n in_o the_o time_n of_o and_o after_o the_o council_n but_o even_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n where_o the_o interpreter_n read_v which_o the_o father_n understand_v that_o mystery_n which_o the_o apostle_n call_v confess_o so_o great_a of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o be_v the_o assumptum_fw-la est_fw-la in_o gloria_fw-la of_o the_o vulgar_a latin_a take_v up_o into_o glory_n capable_a of_o any_o other_o sense_n these_o gentleman_n have_v a_o great_a disadvantage_n that_o when_o they_o have_v never_o so_o fine_o shape_v a_o interpretation_n and_o put_v it_o in_o never_o so_o pretty_a a_o dress_n not_o only_o the_o new_a but_o also_o the_o old_a christian_a world_n rise_v against_o it_o it_o be_v the_o wish_n no_o doubt_n of_o a_o good_a man_n that_o his_o soul_n may_v rest_v with_o the_o philosopher_n let_v my_o rest_n with_o the_o primitive_a father_n and_o council_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o art_n and_o science_n the_o further_o we_o go_v the_o great_a be_v our_o improvement_n but_o in_o the_o case_n of_o religion_n the_o near_o we_o return_v to_o the_o spring_n the_o more_o purity_n and_o truth_n we_o meet_v with_o rom._n 9.5_o be_v another_o stare_a text._n who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o amen_n that_o the_o title_n of_o bless_a over_o all_o for_o ever_o be_v only_o due_a and_o be_v only_o give_v to_o the_o almighty_a be_v evident_a from_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o constant_a practice_n of_o jew_n and_o christian_n if_o the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o in_o this_o text_n it_o will_v lose_v nothing_o of_o its_o force_n the_o bless_a over_o all_o imply_v with_o all_o the_o jewish_a doctor_n that_o essential_a happiness_n that_o absolute_a dominion_n that_o incomprehensible_a greatness_n which_o belong_v to_o none_o but_o he_o who_o be_v god_n by_o nature_n but_o since_o all_o this_o be_v say_v of_o christ_n in_o plain_a and_o express_v word_n the_o consequence_n be_v easy_a he_o must_v be_v that_o god_n shall_v all_o mankind_n conspire_v to_o find_v word_n clear_a and_o positive_a to_o represent_v the_o two_o nature_n and_o god_n make_v man_n they_o must_v come_v short_a of_o this_o apostle_n who_o show_v the_o one_o in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o text_n of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v and_o the_o other_o in_o that_o who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o ever_o proclus_n in_o his_o book_n the_o fid_fw-we look_n on_o this_o text_n alone_o as_o a_o confutation_n of_o all_o the_o heresy_n concern_v christ_n athanasius_n and_o the_o catholic_n father_n urge_v it_o with_o vehemence_n against_o the_o arrian_n theophilact_fw-mi the_o great_a admirer_n and_o even_o the_o transcriber_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n say_v in_o this_o place_n that_o st._n paul_n by_o proclaim_v christ_n god_n over_o all_o have_v publish_v the_o shame_n of_o arrius_n who_o deny_v it_o to_o all_o the_o world_n the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n pag._n 35._o say_v to_o this_o one_a that_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a by_o the_o syriack_n and_o some_o passage_n in_o ignatius_n and_o other_o father_n that_o the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o original_o in_o this_o text._n for_o they_o read_v it_o without_o 2_o admit_v the_o read_n in_o the_o vulgar_a edition_n of_o the_o greek_a erasmus_n and_o curcellaeus_n observe_v that_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v thus_o translate_v of_o who_o as_o concern_v the_o flesh_n christ_n come_v god_n who_o be_v over_o all_o be_v bless_v for_o ever_o 3_o that_o these_o word_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n or_o concern_v the_o flesh_n never_o signify_v according_a to_o his_o human_a nature_n as_o if_o he_o have_v also_o a_o divine_a nature_n rom._n 9.3_o my_o kinsman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n rom._n 4.1_o abraham_n
our_o father_n as_o pertain_v to_o the_o flesh_n coloss_n 3.22_o servant_n obey_v in_o all_o thing_n your_o master_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n which_o place_n do_v not_o suppose_v that_o they_o have_v a_o divine_a nature_n but_o only_o mean_v that_o abraham_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o jew_n according_a to_o their_o body_n as_o god_n be_v the_o father_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o spirit_n therefore_o the_o meaning_n can_v only_o be_v that_o according_a to_o the_o body_n christ_n descend_v from_o abraham_n and_o david_n this_o last_o part_n of_o the_o answer_n be_v perfect_o socinian_n the_o second_o he_o have_v borrow_a of_o erasmus_n and_o the_o first_o of_o grotius_n the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n he_o add_v that_o mr._n milbourn_n may_v have_v take_v notice_n out_o of_o grotius_n that_o the_o greek_a copy_n use_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o syriack_n have_v not_o the_o word_n god_n they_o only_o say_v the_o bless_a over_o all_o that_o the_o same_o illustrious_a interpreter_n observe_v that_o erasmus_n have_v note_v that_o the_o copy_n of_o st._n cyprian_n chrysostom_n hilary_n have_v only_o the_o bless_a over_o all_o without_o the_o word_n god_n then_o the_o answerer_n grow_v angry_a these_o be_v say_v he_o observation_n which_o destroy_v our_o author_n argument_n from_o this_o text._n but_o because_o he_o know_v not_o what_o to_o say_v to_o they_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o they_o it_o be_v a_o impious_a thing_n for_o a_o writer_n to_o endeavour_v to_o cheat_v his_o reader_n in_o such_o question_n as_o these_o when_o it_o appear_v by_o such_o great_a authority_n that_o the_o ancient_a read_n be_v otherwise_o or_o various_a or_o uncertain_a how_o can_v such_o text_n be_v admit_v as_o proof_n in_o so_o great_a a_o question_n as_o this_o at_o last_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o erasmus_n have_v make_v a_o translation_n contrary_n to_o all_o the_o translation_n in_o the_o world_n because_o he_o observe_v that_o if_o the_o word_n god_n over_o all_o have_v be_v intend_v of_o christ_n the_o apostle_n shall_v have_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o doubt_v not_o say_v he_o that_o our_o author_n be_v aware_a that_o those_o critic_n be_v in_o the_o right_n and_o therefore_o he_o willing_o overlook_v both_o the_o translation_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o it_o thus_o far_o this_o author_n pag._n 34.35_o of_o his_o answer_n this_o be_v indeed_o very_o severe_a and_o much_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o common_a civility_n but_o strange_o barbarous_a if_o all_o this_o be_v make_v to_o appear_v to_o be_v trifle_v and_o inconsiderable_a one_a this_o gentleman_n who_o chide_v mr._n milbourn_n for_o not_o take_v notice_n out_o of_o the_o illustrious_a grotius_n that_o the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o in_o the_o syriack_n shall_v not_o have_v trust_v grotius_n who_o be_v real_o mistake_v in_o this_o but_o shall_v have_v go_v to_o the_o syraick_n itself_o and_o there_o will_v have_v find_v the_o word_n god_n he_o shall_v have_v see_v also_o that_o he_o be_v deceive_v by_o grotius_n as_o grotius_n be_v by_o erasmus_n a_o illustrious_a person_n often_o deceive_v another_o about_o st._n cyprian_n st._n chrysostom_n and_o st._n hilary_n for_o several_a copy_n of_o st._n cyprian_n read_v the_o word_n god_n and_o that_o that_o demonstrate_v beyond_o the_o possibility_n of_o denial_n that_o if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o some_o copy_n it_o must_v have_v be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o transcriber_n be_v this_o that_o st._n cyprian_n make_v use_v of_o this_o text_n lib._n 2._o adv_n jud._n and_o bring_v into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o those_o text_n which_o call_v christ_n ●od_a he_o have_v it_o from_o tertullian_n dispute_v against_o praxea_n and_o allege_v this_o text_n twice_o a_o thing_n ordinary_a to_o st._n cyprian_n who_o use_v to_o call_v the_o learned_a african_n his_o master_n this_o show_v by_o the_o way_n how_o these_o gentleman_n can_v assure_v that_o the_o antenicene_a father_n do_v not_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n erasmus_n have_v also_o mistake_v st._n chrysostom_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o read_v the_o bless_a over_o all_o without_z god_n that_o in_o his_o exposition_n he_o read_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o but_o both_o when_o he_o cite_v this_o text._n but_o for_o st._n hilary_n i_o be_o amaze_v to_o hear_v his_o authority_n dispute_v who_o have_v not_o only_o cite_v this_o text_n with_o the_o word_n god_n bless_v over_o all_o but_o add_v a_o explication_n to_o it_o which_o be_v level_v against_o the_o very_a soul_n of_o socinianism_n the_o belove_a notion_n of_o a_o depute_a or_o of_o a_o make_v god_n non_fw-la ignorat_fw-la paulus_n christum_fw-la deum_fw-la dicens_fw-la quorum_fw-la sunt_fw-la patres_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la quibus_fw-la christus_fw-la qui_fw-la est_fw-la super_fw-la omne_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la hic_fw-la creatura_fw-la in_o deum_fw-la deputatur_fw-la sed_fw-la creaturarum_fw-la deus_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la super_fw-la omne_fw-la deus_fw-la paul_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o christ_n be_v god_n who_o say_v who_o be_v the_o father_n and_o of_o who_o christ_n come_v who_o be_v god_n over_o all_o here_o a_o creature_n be_v not_o a_o depute_a god_n but_o he_o be_v the_o god_n of_o creature_n who_o be_v god_n over_o all_o hil._n de_fw-fr trin._n the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n be_v sensible_a of_o this_o and_o modest_o decline_v the_o name_n of_o these_o father_n but_o how_o can_v mr._n milbourn_n adversary_n so_o severe_o reflect_v upon_o he_o when_o he_o himself_o be_v certain_o in_o the_o wrong_n may_v i_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o his_o own_o word_n either_o he_o know_v all_o this_o or_o he_o do_v not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o how_o can_v he_o call_v a_o read_v various_a and_o uncertain_a when_o their_o be_v none_o so_o clear_a and_o so_o free_a from_o exception_n and_o if_o he_o do_v how_o can_v he_o have_v the_o conscience_n to_o do_v it_o but_o admit_v that_o god_n be_v not_o in_o the_o text_n what_o then_o the_o stress_n of_o the_o argument_n do_v not_o lie_v in_o the_o word_n god_n which_o these_o gentleman_n understand_v as_o they_o please_v but_o in_o the_o word_n bless_v over_o all_o which_o belong_v to_o none_o but_o god_n mark_n 14.61_o be_v thou_o the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o the_o bless_a by_o which_o word_n bless_v the_o the_o highpriest_n understand_v in_o the_o dialect_n of_o the_o jew_n the_o holy_a one_o the_o almighty_a the_o only_a true_a god_n rom._n 1.25_o and_o 11.36_o 2._o cor._n 11.31_o gal._n 1.5_o 1_o tim._n 1.7_o in_o all_o which_o place_n and_o great_a many_o more_o be_v a_o perpetual_a acknowledgement_n of_o that_o eternal_a glory_n which_o be_v god_n and_o infinite_o transcend_v any_o create_v be_v nor_o can_v there_o be_v a_o more_o substantial_a proof_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n than_o this_o that_o that_o glory_n be_v give_v he_o as_o in_o this_o text_n which_o by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v give_v only_o to_o god_n heb._n 13.22_o 1_o pet._n 4.11_o and_o 5.11_o 2_o pet._n 3.18_o rev._n 1.6_o 2_o the_o punctuation_n of_o erasmus_n and_o curcellaeus_n and_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o word_n be_v be_v a_o bold_a and_o presumptuous_a attempt_n unknown_a to_o all_o antiquity_n and_o which_o the_o arrian_n themselves_o never_o think_v of_o if_o this_o liberty_n be_v grant_v there_o be_v not_o a_o place_n in_o scripture_n but_o what_o may_v be_v pervert_v man_n must_v leave_v off_o to_o talk_v and_o reason_n there_o can_v be_v no_o faith_n no_o candour_n leave_v in_o dispute_n the_o honest_a discourse_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o a_o different_a punctuation_n of_o the_o word_n may_v be_v make_v obscure_a and_o infamous_a but_o it_o be_v the_o sickness_n of_o these_o gentleman_n the_o bible_n will_v not_o say_v what_o they_o will_v have_v it_o to_o say_v and_o therefore_o they_o must_v add_v particle_n and_o comma_n and_o alter_v a_o order_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v sacred_a and_o inviolable_a but_o after_o all_o this_o the_o criticism_n say_v beza_n on_o this_o place_n be_v little_a and_o silly_a it_o be_v know_v to_o any_o one_o who_o have_v the_o small_a tincture_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d with_o a_o participle_n be_v the_o same_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o send_v erasmus_n for_o this_o to_o school_n and_o this_o use_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n i_o take_v to_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o neither_o asterius_n the_o grammarian_n nor_o the_o other_o arrian_n who_o understand_v the_o extent_n of_o their_o own_o language_n ever_o make_v this_o exception_n 3_o that_o these_o word_n concern_v the_o flesh_n do_v no_o more_o suppose_v a_o divine_a nature_n in_o christ_n than_o in_o abraham_n these_o gentleman_n
redemption_n of_o the_o world_n they_o must_v forgive_v i_o if_o i_o say_v that_o this_o be_v a_o mere_a trifle_n god_n own_o lamb_n be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n god_n own_o son_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o god_n own_o blood_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o he_o who_o be_v god_n tit._n 2.13_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o father_n against_o the_o arrian_n as_o a_o clear_a proof_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n look_v for_o that_o bless_a hope_n and_o the_o glorious_a appear_v of_o the_o great_a god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a histor_n pag._n say_v to_o this_o one_a that_o nothing_o hinder_v that_o we_o may_v believe_v that_o not_o only_o the_o lord_n christ_n but_o god_n himself_o will_v appear_v at_o the_o last_o judgement_n 2_o that_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o great_a god_n be_v the_o pomp_n power_n and_o angel_n that_o god_n even_o the_o father_n will_v cause_v to_o accompany_v christ_n in_o that_o day_n matt._n 16.27_o the_o son_n shall_v appear_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o father_n with_o he_o the_o father_n angel_n the_o first_o of_o these_o two_o assertion_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n joh._n 5.22_o the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n the_o second_o be_v as_o contrary_a as_o the_o first_o matt._n 25.31_o when_o the_o son_n of_o man_n shall_v come_v in_o his_o glory_n ...._o then_o shall_v he_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o his_o glory_n but_o all_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o divert_v instead_o of_o resolve_v the_o question_n the_o only_a difficulty_n which_o can_v be_v propose_v the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n have_v decline_v we_o prove_v from_o this_o text_n that_o the_o great_a god_n and_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o same_o person_n that_o the_o great_a god_n and_o saviour_n be_v predicate_v or_o say_v of_o christ_n this_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v deny_v and_o reason_n give_v for_o it_o and_o this_o will_v have_v be_v to_o the_o purpose_n but_o this_o author_n see_v it_o be_v not_o possible_a and_o that_o the_o greek_a dialect_n exclude_v in_o this_o place_n all_o the_o little_a criticism_n which_o come_v in_o heap_n in_o other_o place_n i_o wonder_v that_o those_o great_a master_n of_o the_o greek_a tongue_n who_o do_v presume_v in_o the_o text_n dispute_v of_o before_o this_o to_o put_v the_o blood_n of_o his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o room_n of_o his_o own_o blood_n have_v not_o here_o add_v a_o article_n and_o read_v the_o great_a god_n and_o the_o saviour_n j._n c._n and_o pretend_v some_o ancient_a copy_n that_o curcellaeus_n or_o some_o body_n else_o have_v see_v this_o text_n than_o be_v undoubted_o we_o the_o great_a god_n and_o saviour_n of_o we_o be_v the_o same_o way_n of_o speak_v as_o the_o god_n and_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o conjunctive_a particle_n which_o unite_v god_n and_o father_n unite_n also_o god_n and_o saviour_n nor_o can_v they_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v here_o of_o a_o depute_a god_n since_o there_o be_v a_o article_n here_o and_o the_o epithet_n great_a add_v to_o it_o but_o nothing_o show_v so_o much_o how_o far_o these_o gentleman_n be_v prejudice_v against_o the_o plain_a evidence_n than_o their_o answer_n to_o joh._n 20.28_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n of_o i_o and_o the_o god_n of_o i_o socinus_n say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n pag._n 32_o and_o 34._o with_o two_o more_o learned_a unitarian_n contend_v that_o it_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o thomas_n to_o call_v our_o saviour_n his_o lord_n and_o his_o god_n but_o it_o be_v in_o no_o other_o sense_n than_o solomon_n ps_n 45._o moses_n and_o samuel_n that_o god_n be_v use_v among_o the_o eastern_a people_n as_o the_o word_n lord_n be_v use_v among_o we_o who_o do_v not_o design_n to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o god_n because_o we_o speak_v to_o he_o with_o a_o name_n which_o we_o also_o use_v to_o god_n yet_o though_o this_o come_v from_o socinus_n this_o author_n be_v not_o willing_a to_o stand_v to_o it_o he_o say_v this_o interpretation_n be_v likely_a to_o be_v true_a but_o that_o divers_a learned_a person_n among_o their_o opposer_n and_o even_o of_o old_a nestorius_n and_o theodore_n of_o mopswest_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o my_o lord_n and_o my_o god_n be_v only_a word_n of_o admiration_n and_o thanks_o direct_v not_o to_o our_o saviour_n but_o to_o god_n they_o be_v a_o exclamation_n express_v the_o apostle_n amazement_n to_o find_v his_o master_n be_v rise_v he_o send_v we_o to_o the_o brief_a history_n the_o author_n of_o that_o history_n be_v so_o little_o take_v with_o the_o depute_a god_n of_o socinus_n that_o he_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n of_o it_o he_o say_v pag._n 32._o that_o nestorius_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o word_n be_v not_o design_v to_o christ_n but_o to_o god_n for_o though_o the_o evangelist_n say_v thomas_n answer_v and_o say_v to_o he_o yet_o the_o exclamation_n may_v be_v address_v to_o god_n as_o its_o object_n and_o the_o answer_n to_o our_o saviour_n ......_o it_o may_v be_v admit_v as_o true_a what_o other_o say_v o_o my_o lord_n be_v word_n of_o congratulation_n to_o our_o saviour_n o_o my_o god_n word_n of_o admiration_n and_o praise_n to_o god_n thus_o these_o gentleman_n cut_v and_o slash_v the_o scripture_n and_o show_v how_o man_n who_o depart_v from_o the_o truth_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o themselves_o socinus_n overcome_v by_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o thing_n acknowledge_v the_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o christ_n but_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o rule_n though_o the_o word_n be_v with_o a_o article_n and_o so_o must_v belong_v to_o the_o true_a god_n will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o a_o depute_a god_n or_o a_o god_n by_o office_n nestorius_n theodore_n and_o these_o gentleman_n be_v convince_v that_o the_o god_n speak_v of_o here_o be_v the_o almighty_a but_o though_o the_o text_n express_o say_v and_o ●homas_fw-la answer_v and_o say_v to_o he_o my_o lord_n and_o my_o god_n yet_o it_o must_v not_o be_v to_o he_o but_o to_o god_n himself_o they_o separate_z what_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n have_v join_v and_o though_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n that_o the_o word_n my_o god_n be_v say_v to_o he_o to_o who_o the_o word_n my_o lord_n be_v speak_v be_v both_o join_v by_o the_o particle_n and_o yet_o this_o will_v not_o do_v one_o part_n must_v be_v a_o compliment_n to_o christ_n the_o other_o a_o prayer_n to_o god_n these_o gentleman_n will_v fain_o have_v new_a bibles_n the_o author_n of_o the_o answer_n to_o my_o lord_n of_o sarum_n pag._n 30._o there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o our_o answer_n or_o defence_n if_o there_o be_v but_o a_o honest_a edition_n of_o the_o bible_n ....._o we_o have_v not_o reform_v bibles_n none_o that_o have_v be_v correct_v to_o speak_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n rather_o than_o of_o the_o gospel_n but_o it_o be_v above_o 1200_o year_n that_o other_o have_v be_v model_v the_o common_a bibles_n by_o the_o doctrine_n and_o article_n of_o our_o holy_a mother_n church_n i_o think_v they_o do_v not_o ask_v enough_o i_o will_v have_v they_o also_o find_v out_o a_o new_a language_n new_a way_n for_o man_n to_o express_v themselves_o by_o i_o will_v have_v they_o procure_v a_o act_n of_o parliament_n by_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v enact_v that_o to_o answer_v and_o to_o speak_v to_o a_o man_n shall_v not_o be_v to_o answer_v and_o to_o speak_v to_o he_o but_o to_o some_o body_n else_o i_o will_v have_v they_o take_v such_o vulgar_a notion_n as_o these_o out_o of_o man_n head_n and_o create_v in_o they_o new_a method_n of_o think_v and_o receve_v impression_n from_o what_o they_o hear_v by_o be_v persuade_v that_o though_o they_o receive_v a_o answer_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o to_o they_o that_o it_o be_v give_v true_o have_v i_o be_v in_o the_o five_o general_n council_n where_o this_o answer_n of_o theodore_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o father_n sin_v 5._o coll_n 4._o i_o will_v not_o only_o have_v anathematise_v the_o impiety_n but_o also_o the_o folly_n and_o impertinence_n of_o the_o opinion_n these_o two_o answer_n then_o invincible_o consute_n one_o another_o s●cinus_n confute_v that_o part_n which_o will_v not_o have_v the_o word_n to_o be_v speak_v to_o the_o saviour_n and_o these_o gentleman_n confute_v that_o part_n which_o make_v the_o god_n who_o be_v speak_v to_o to_o be_v a_o depute_a god_n they_o lead_v we_o to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o this_o text_n that_o thomas_n a_o apostle_n have_v full_o acknowledge_v that_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o god_n this_o
quick_a way_n to_o strike_v dumb_a a_o man_n of_o the_o bishop_n part_n and_o judgement_n his_o lordship_n say_v that_o christ_n can_v be_v a_o creature_n because_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o he_o say_v gal._n 1.5_o to_o who_o be_v glory_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o a_o eulogy_n give_v to_o none_o in_o scripture_n but_o the_o almighty_a the_o prelate_n follow_v in_o this_o the_o constant_a notion_n of_o the_o jew_n so_o visible_a in_o both_o the_o testament_n that_o no_o truth_n be_v clear_a conceive_v by_o the_o word_n glory_n either_o the_o essential_a happiness_n of_o god_n his_o incomprehensible_a greatness_n or_o his_o glorious_a appearance_n to_o man_n and_o the_o earnest_a wish_n of_o pious_a soul_n that_o this_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o his_o creature_n matt._n 6.13_o for_o thou_o be_v the_o kingdom_n the_o power_n and_o the_o glory_n for_o ever_o 1_o sam._n 4.21_o exod._n 24.16_o esay_n 6.1_o joh._n 12.41_o act._n 7.55_o mark_n 8.38_o 2_o pet._n 1.3_o and_o very_o many_o other_o place_n the_o way_n to_o answer_v this_o be_v either_o to_o deny_v the_o notion_n and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v either_o false_a or_o mistake_v or_o else_o to_o prove_v that_o this_o way_n of_o expression_n be_v not_o use_v only_o to_o god_n but_o this_o can_v be_v do_v and_o therefore_o this_o author_n reply_v that_o glory_n and_o honour_n be_v equivalent_a term_n in_o the_o greek_a that_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o be_v no_o more_o than_o for_o ever_o that_o daniel_n who_o say_v to_o a_o heathen_a prince_n o_o king_n live_v for_o ever_o will_v not_o have_v scruple_v to_o say_v o_o king_n i_o wish_v thou_o glory_n for_o ever_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v reckon_v a_o idolater_n for_o wish_v his_o lordship_n perpetual_a honour_n one_o must_v have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o charity_n to_o believe_v these_o gentleman_n to_o be_v in_o earnest_n and_o not_o endeavour_v to_o bant_a religion_n out_o of_o door_n when_o such_o crude_a and_o indigested_a answer_n drop_v from_o their_o pen._n glory_n with_o they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o honour_n and_o lord_n be_v no_o more_o than_o master_n and_o sir_n and_o worship_n be_v the_o same_o as_o how_o do_v you_o do_v to_o worship_v another_o say_v this_o author_n pag._n 27._o often_o signify_v no_o more_o than_o to_o salute_v they_o by_o bow_v and_o the_o like_a which_o superior_n do_v to_o inferior_n this_o be_v true_a but_o when_o god_n bring_v the_o first_o beget_v into_o the_o world_n the_o emanuel_n the_o god_n with_o we_o the_o redeemer_n of_o mankind_n his_o only_a son_n when_o he_o subject_n the_o whole_a creation_n to_o he_o and_o command_v the_o very_a angel_n to_o adore_v he_o heb._n 1.7_o and_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n worship_v he_o do_v all_o this_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o ask_v how_o he_o do_v do_v i_o will_v give_v one_o instance_n more_o how_o these_o gentleman_n take_v the_o wrong_a side_n of_o a_o thing_n when_o they_o please_v his_o lordship_n have_v insist_v that_o it_o be_v a_o vast_a absurditiy_n that_o the_o same_o act_n in_o which_o we_o adore_v god_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n offer_v to_o a_o creature_n than_o which_o nothing_o be_v true_a but_o his_o lordship_n say_v this_o author_n pag._n 26._o be_v guilty_a of_o a_o much_o vast_a inadvertency_n as_o he_o himself_o will_v be_v oblige_v to_o confess_v when_o he_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o the_o follow_a text_n 1_o chr._n 29.20_o all_o the_o congregation_n bless_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o their_o father_n and_o bow_v their_o head_n worship_v the_o lord_n and_o the_o king_n in_o which_o word_n worship_n be_v give_v to_o the_o king_n as_o to_o the_o lord_n and_o yet_o be_v no_o idolatry_n but_o this_o author_n be_v himself_o guilty_a of_o a_o vast_a mistake_n for_o worship_v as_o it_o be_v a_o act_n of_o religion_n be_v pay_v neither_o to_o the_o lord_n nor_o to_o the_o king_n in_o this_o last_o part_n of_o the_o text._n that_o that_o be_v address_v to_o god_n be_v in_o the_o first_o all_o the_o congregation_n bless_v the_o lord_n god_n of_o their_o father_n the_o rest_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o civility_n pay_v at_o their_o part_n to_o the_o king_n who_o be_v then_o present_a and_o to_o the_o place_n where_o they_o worship_v as_o at_o this_o time_n we_o bow_v either_o in_o the_o church_n or_o towards_o the_o altar_n and_o yet_o on_o this_o sort_n of_o trifle_a answer_n these_o gentleman_n grave_o insist_v to_o oppose_v the_o plain_a and_o clear_a truth_n another_o text_n he_o have_v cite_v to_o this_o purpose_n 1_o tim._n 5.21_o i_o charge_v thou_o before_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o elect_a angel_n where_o say_v this_o author_n a_o apostle_n join_v creature_n with_o god_n in_o the_o high_a act_n of_o religion_n i.e._n a_o adjuration_n i_o can_v see_v nothing_o in_o this_o like_o religious_a worship_n the_o apostle_n pray_v neither_o to_o god_n nor_o to_o christ_n nor_o to_o the_o angel_n he_o may_v as_o well_o have_v add_v before_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o before_o all_o the_o world_n st._n paul_n have_v give_v those_o direction_n to_o timothy_n which_o have_v be_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o the_o canon_n make_v since_o in_o the_o church_n he_o insist_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v faithful_a to_o they_o and_o as_o a_o motive_n to_o his_o obedience_n he_o entreat_v he_o by_o all_o that_o be_v holy_a by_o god_n by_o j._n c._n by_o the_o elect_a angel_n this_o i_o find_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o most_o interpreter_n nor_o do_v i_o know_v any_o among_o the_o ancient_n or_o the_o protestant_a commentator_n who_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v that_o this_o do_v import_v adoration_n to_o any_o creature_n 7_o to_o adore_v to_o trust_v in_o to_o believe_v be_v act_n which_o can_v have_v none_o but_o god_n for_o their_o object_n but_o all_o this_o be_v so_o often_o attribute_v to_o christ_n that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v with_o any_o sort_n of_o modesty_n heb._n 1.7_o let_v all_o the_o angel_n of_o god_n woship_n he_o matt._n 12.21_o in_o his_o name_n shall_v the_o gentile_n trust_v render_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o he_o shall_v the_o gentile_n trust_v eph._n 1.12_o 13._o that_o we_o shall_v be_v to_o the_o praise_n of_o his_o glory_n who_o first_o trust_v in_o christ_n in_o who_o also_o you_o trust_v after_o that_o you_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o truth_n the_o gospel_n of_o your_o salvation_n in_o who_o also_o after_o that_o you_o believe_v you_o be_v seal_v with_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o promise_n act._n 20.21_o repentance_n towards_o god_n and_o faith_n towards_o our_o lord_n j.c._n 2_o tim._n 3.15_o which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v thou_o wise_a to_o salvation_n through_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o c.j._n gal._n 2.16_o know_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v ...._o but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o j.c._n even_o we_o have_v believe_v in_o j.c._n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n the_o scripture_n be_v so_o full_a to_o this_o that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o cite_v as_o to_o transcribe_v but_o be_v this_o author_n serious_a when_o pag._n 26._o of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n to_o elude_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o and_o of_o five_o hundred_o place_n more_o he_o bring_v in_o dogmatical_o 1_o sam._n 12.18_o the_o people_n great_o fear_v the_o lord_n and_o samuel_n and_o exod._n 14.31_o the_o people_n believe_v the_o lord_n and_o his_o servant_n moses_n i_o wonder_v he_o have_v omit_v fear_v god_n and_o honour_n the_o king_n for_o it_o be_v as_o much_o to_o the_o purpose_n will_v man_n ever_o be_v guilty_a of_o that_o cry_a injustice_n to_o pretend_v to_o overthrow_v the_o faith_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n and_o ruin_n at_o once_o the_o authority_n of_o vast_a many_o text_n by_o one_o or_o two_o single_a and_o solitary_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o when_o all_o be_v do_v signify_v nothing_o to_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n christ_n be_v propose_v to_o mankind_n as_o the_o son_n of_o god_n as_o the_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n of_o their_o soul_n as_o the_o only_a name_n under_o heaven_n by_o which_o we_o can_v be_v save_v the_o end_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v that_o we_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v he_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v be_v condemn_v already_o and_o we_o be_v put_v off_o with_o moses_n and_o samuel_n who_o the_o people_n do_v believe_v because_o they_o confirm_v by_o a_o miracle_n the_o truth_n which_o they_o deliver_v 8_o he_o that_o be_v pray_v to_o be_v god_n for_o none_o but_o god_n can_v be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o prayer_n to_o hear_v to_o know_v to_o relieve_v our_o want_n natural_o suppose_v
omniscience_n and_o omnipotence_n it_o be_v incomprehensible_a that_o the_o generality_n of_o socinian_o shall_v contend_v that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v to_o which_o be_v the_o assertion_n of_o the_o author_n of_o one_o brief_a history_n pag._n 33_o and_o worship_v with_o divine_a worship_n and_o yet_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v god_n to_o give_v divine_a worship_n to_o a_o creature_n be_v a_o plain_a and_o inexcusable_a idolatry_n strange_a that_o the_o force_n of_o truth_n shall_v extort_v from_o they_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v and_o yet_o that_o he_o be_v not_o god_n the_o only_o be_v who_o we_o ought_v to_o adore_v the_o english_a socinian_n see_v the_o force_n of_o this_o consequence_n therefore_o they_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v to_o but_o one_o can_v read_v without_o indignation_n this_o assertion_n of_o the_o author_n in_o their_o defence_n pag._n 33._o it_o appear_v say_v he_o by_o st._n austin_n and_o photius_n that_o origen_n deny_v that_o the_o son_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v or_o pray_v to_o he_o cite_v origen_n lib._n 8._o contr_n cell_n who_o say_v he_o express_o deny_v that_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v invocate_v he_o add_v that_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v that_o origen_n speak_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o his_o time_n this_o author_n than_o be_v positive_a that_o neither_o origen_n nor_o the_o church_n in_o his_o time_n believe_v it_o lawful_a to_o pray_v to_o christ_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v the_o place_n which_o he_o have_v cite_v he_o must_v have_v be_v convince_v that_o he_o have_v cite_v at_o random_n and_o that_o origen_n have_v no_o such_o thing_n the_o 8_o book_n allege_v with_o so_o much_o assurance_n by_o the_o author_n have_v not_o a_o single_a line_n which_o seem_v to_o have_v a_o tendency_n to_o this_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o have_v invincible_a proof_n that_o origen_n and_o consequent_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o his_o time_n do_v think_v it_o not_o only_o lawful_a but_o even_o necessary_a to_o pray_v to_o christ_n the_o father_n begin_v that_o very_a book_n by_o implore_v the_o help_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o word_n the_o only_o beget_v of_o god_n on_o himself_o who_o have_v finish_v the_o seven_o be_v now_o write_v the_o 8_o book_n against_o the_o lie_n and_o slander_n of_o celsus_n have_v assert_v the_o pre-existence_n and_o eternity_n of_o christ_n his_o most_o intimate_a union_n with_o the_o father_n he_o say_v pag._n 386._o edit_fw-la cantab._n we_o adore_v one_o god_n and_o his_o only_a son_n his_o word_n and_o his_o image_n with_o our_o supplication_n offer_v our_o prayer_n to_o god_n through_o his_o only_a son_n to_o who_o first_o we_o address_v they_o beseech_v he_o that_o as_o he_o be_v a_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n he_o will_v like_v our_o highpriest_n offer_v to_o the_o most_o b●●●_n god_n our_o prayer_n intercession_n sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 3_o 5._o none_o be_v to_o be_v pray_v to_o but_o the_o most_o high_a god_n and_o to_o only_o beget_v the_o first_o bear_v of_o every_o creature_n the_o word_n of_o god_n pag._n 422._o we_o sing_v hymn_n only_o to_o god_n who_o be_v above_o all_o thing_n and_o to_o god_n the_o word_n his_o only_o beget_v son_n this_o show_v the_o practice_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n o●_n that_o time_n and_o of_o the_o very_a primitive_a church_n before_o to_o adore_v christ_n in_o those_o hymn_n make_v in_o his_o praise_n carmen_fw-la christo_fw-la quasi_fw-la deo_fw-la dicere_fw-la secum_fw-la inuicem_fw-la say_v pliny_n to_o the_o emperor_n lib._n 10_o epis_n 97._o to_o sing_v a_o hymn_n among_o themselves_o to_o christ_n as_o god_n a_o authority_n bring_v by_o tertullian_n apol._n c._n 2._o which_o teach_v we_o that_o all_o that_o pliny_n can_v know_v of_o their_o religious_a rite_n be_v that_o they_o meet_v before_o day_n ad_fw-la canendum_fw-la christo_fw-la ut_fw-la deo_fw-la to_o sing_v hymn_n to_o christ_n as_o to_o their_o god_n i_o know_v that_o these_o gentleman_n who_o under_o pretence_n of_o critise_v will_v alter_v any_o writing_n have_v pretend_v to_o read_v christo_n &_o deo_fw-la to_o christ_n and_o to_o god_n but_o i_o know_v this_o to_o be_v a_o wilful_a mistake_n the_o ancient_a and_o genuine_a read_v being_n christo_fw-la ut_fw-la deo_fw-la thus_o eusebius_n cite_v this_o very_a place_n of_o tertullian_n chron._n l._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d translate_v by_o st._n jerom_n in_o ter●ullian's_n own_o word_n to_o sing_v to_o christ_n as_o god_n a_o practice_n which_o the_o same_o eusebius_n hist_o lib._n 5._o c._n 28._o say_v to_o have_v be_v of_o justin_n martyr_n miltiades_n tatianus_n clemens_n melito_n jrence_n the_o early_a and_o best_a time_n of_o christianity_n have_v give_v this_o testimony_n to_o christ_n divinity_n and_o to_o the_o prayer_n offer_v he_o but_o how_o can_v it_o ever_o enter_v into_o these_o gentleman_n head_n to_o deny_v pray_v to_o christ_n upon_o such_o unconclude_a argument_n as_o the_o answerer_n to_o mr._n milbourn_n and_o the_o author_n of_o the_o brief_a hist_n have_v use_v when_o they_o can_v but_o see_v it_o practise_v in_o scripture_n luk._n 17.5_o lord_n increase_v our_o haith_n mark_v 9.24_o lord_n i_o believe_v help_v thou_o my_o unbelief_n nor_o will_v the_o mean_a evasion_n serve_v that_o it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o recommend_v ourselves_o to_o one_o another_o prayer_n what_o creature_n dare_v to_o say_v to_o another_o creature_n without_o blasphemy_n or_o idolatry_n increase_v my_o faith_n help_v my_o unbelief_n act_v 7.59_o they_o stone_a stephen_n call_v upon_o god_n and_o say_v lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n if_o this_o be_v not_o pray_v adore_a and_o exercise_v the_o high_a act_n of_o trust_n imaginable_a there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n compare_v this_o place_n with_o 1_o pet._n 4.19_o commit_v the_o keep_n of_o their_o soul_n to_o he_o ....._o as_o unto_o a_o faithful_a creator_n and_o tell_v i_o the_o difference_n between_o commit_v our_o soul_n and_o offer_v our_o spirit_n to_o be_v receive_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o hist_n to_o this_o pag._n 32._o be_v so_o strange_a that_o have_v i_o see_v it_o in_o any_o book_n but_o his_o own_o i_o will_v have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o satyr_n upon_o he_o and_o a_o gross_a slander_n one_a say_v he_o the_o name_n god_n be_v not_o in_o any_o greek_a copy_n true_a but_o do_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o pray_v to_o implore_v or_o as_o the_o latin_a interpreter_n to_o invocate_v imply_v the_o word_n god_n since_o the_o very_a action_n have_v god_n for_o its_o object_n the_o prebendary_n of_o westminster_n be_v go_v to_o pray_v therefore_o they_o do_v not_o pray_v to_o god_n because_o the_o word_n god_n be_v not_o name_v in_o the_o proposition_n this_o be_v all_o foolish_a since_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o thing_n import_v that_o it_o be_v to_o god_n to_o who_o they_o make_v their_o address_n 2_o he_o say_v that_o the_o greek_a render_v grammatical_o make_v this_o sense_n o_o lord_n of_o jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n which_o be_v false_a trifle_a ridiculous_a and_o not_o worth_a a_o reply_n 3_o he_o pretend_v the_o meaning_n to_o be_v only_o this_o stephen_n call_v upon_o god_n and_o say_v lord_n jesus_n because_o at_o the_o same_o time_n he_o see_v jesus_n in_o a_o prophetic_a vision_n stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n this_o be_v silly_o and_o false_o allege_v stephen_n call_v upon_o god_n and_o say_v he_o who_o he_o speak_v to_o be_v he_o who_o he_o call_v upon_o whether_o he_o see_v he_o or_o no_o be_v not_o the_o question_n but_o the_o offer_v his_o depart_a soul_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o pray_v that_o he_o will_v receive_v it_o into_o his_o mercy_n be_v the_o stress_n of_o the_o argument_n and_o be_v pray_v adore_a rely_v upon_o he_o act_n of_o such_o a_o nature_n as_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n and_o idolatry_n be_v offer_v to_o any_o but_o god_n 9th_o can_v any_o thing_n more_o visible_o infer_v the_o omnipresence_n and_o omniscience_n of_o christ_n then_o matt._n 18.20_o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o my_o name_n there_o be_o i_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o matt._n 28.20_o and_o lo_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n mark_v 2.8_o when_o jesus_n perceive_v in_o his_o spirit_n that_o they_o so_o reason_v within_o themselves_o he_o say_v unto_o they_o why_o reason_v you_o these_o thing_n in_o your_o heart_n joh._n 2.29_o he_o know_v all_o man_n and_o need_v not_o that_o any_o shall_v testify_v of_o man_n for_o he_o know_v what_o be_v in_o man_n 1_o cor._n 4.5_o who_o will_v both_o bring_v to_o light_v the_o hide_a thing_n of_o darkness_n and_o